Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n catholic_n church_n primitive_a 2,203 5 9.2806 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
B06703 The guide in controversies, or, A rational account of the doctrine of Roman-Catholicks concerning the ecclesiastical guide in controversies of religion reflecting on the later writings of Protestants, particularly of Archbishop Lawd and Dr. Stillingfleet on this subject. / By R.H. R. H., 1609-1678. 1667 (1667) Wing W3447A; ESTC R186847 357,072 413

There are 38 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

separation_n at_o all_o this_o concern_v some_o protestant_n restrain_v schism_n to_o culpable_a or_o causeless_a separation_n §_o 57_o again_o some_o of_o they_o there_o be_v who_o straiten_v schism_n yet_o far_o 424._o far_o see_v stillingf_n p._n 331.357.359_o 251_o 290._o compar_fw-la p._n 54.56_o whitby_n p._n 424._o and_o make_v it_o a_o separation_n only_o from_o other_o christian_n or_o church_n in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v unite_v with_o they_o which_o be_v thus_o far_o true_a then_z state_z this_o necessary_a union_n to_o consist_v only_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n §_o 58_o where_o they_o hold_v it_o not_o schism_n to_o separate_v from_o all_o particular_a church_n of_o the_o present_a age_n for_o a_o doctrine_n universal_o hold_v and_o impose_v as_o a_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n because_o they_o say_v a_o error_n may_v be_v so_o impose_v but_o only_a schism_n to_o separate_v from_o the_o primitive_a and_o universal_a church_n for_o doctrine_n 1_o st_z that_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v catholic_n and_o universal_o receive_v in_o the_o manner_n express_v before_o §_o 52._o by_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o time_n of_o such_o separation_n and_o 2_o lie_n that_o can_v also_o be_v prove_v a_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n *_o for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o mr._n stillingfleet_v word_n 371._o word_n p._n 371._o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o answer_n to_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o reform_v former_a catholic_n doctrine_n be_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o say_v he_o to_o prove_v any_o doctrine_n to_o be_v catholic_n that_o it_o be_v general_o receive_v by_o christian_a church_n in_o any_o one_o age_n but_o it_o must_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v so_o receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n not_o to_o say_v that_o a._n d._n 1517._o such_o and_o such_o doctrine_n be_v look_v on_o as_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v so_o but_o that_o for_o 1517._o year_n successive_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o time_n they_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v so_o and_o then_o say_v he_o we_o shall_v more_o easy_o believe_v you_o and_o p._n 357._o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o measure_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o or_o most_o of_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o such_o a_o age_n and_o *_o for_o the_o 2_o d._n in_o the_o 2_o d._n part_n c._n 2._o prove_a protestant_n not_o guilty_a of_o schism_n p._n 331._o he_o say_v whoso_o separate_v from_o any_o particular_a church_n much_o more_o from_o all_o for_o such_o thing_n without_o which_o that_o can_v be_v no_o church_n separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o he_o that_o separate_v only_o from_o particular_a church_n any_o or_o all_o as_o to_o such_o thing_n which_o concern_v not_o their_o be_v be_v only_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o those_o church_n not_o the_o catholic_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o suppose_v that_o all_o particular_a church_n have_v some_o error_n and_o corruption_n in_o they_o though_o i_o shall_v separate_v from_o they_o all_o for_o such_o error_n but_o what_o if_o for_o some_o truth_n though_o this_o not_o fundamental_a i_o do_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n unless_o it_o be_v for_o something_o without_o which_o those_o can_v be_v no_o church_n and_o p._n 358._o no_o church_n can_v be_v charge_v with_o a_o separation_n from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n but_o what_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o separate_v itself_o in_o something_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o long_o as_o it_o do_v not_o separate_v as_o to_o these_o essential_o it_o can_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o be_v free_o grant_v but_o what_o be_v these_o essential_o to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church-catholick_n p._n 357._o he_o say_v that_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n lie_v open_a to_o all_o such_o who_o own_o the_o fundamental_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o p._n 251._o he_o say_v all_o that_o be_v mean_v by_o say_v that_o the_o present_a church_n he_o mean_v catholic_n be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o be_v that_o there_o shall_v always_o be_v a_o church_n for_o that_o which_o make_v they_o a_o church_n be_v the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o and_o if_o they_o believe_v not_o they_o they_o cease_v to_o be_v so_o that_o therefore_o which_o be_v suppose_v a_o church_n be_v and_o be_v destroy_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v be_v the_o formal_a constitution_n of_o it_o but_o thus_o it_o be_v as_o to_o the_o church_n the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o make_v it_o a_o church_n and_o the_o not_o belief_n of_o they_o make_v they_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_a church_n well_o but_o what_o be_v these_o necessary_n or_o fundamental_o of_o the_o christian_a faith_n that_o we_o may_v know_v how_o long_o a_o person_n or_o church_n retain_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n see_v then_o concern_v this_o p._n 53._o 54_o 55._o these_o be_v such_o point_n say_v he_o as_o be_v require_v by_o god_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v by_o all_o in_o order_n to_o attain_v salvation_n and_o which_o be_v they_o p._n 56._o nothing_n ought_v to_o be_v require_v as_o a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o have_v be_v believe_v and_o receive_v for_o such_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o all_o age_n and_o afterward_o what_o have_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o ancient_a creed_n here_o than_o i_o take_v his_o tenent_n to_o be_v that_o not_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o render_v any_o person_n or_o church_n free_a from_o schism_n and_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o continue_v in_o its_o communion_n than_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o all_o fundamental_o or_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o attain_v salvation_n §_o 59_o but_o here_o also_o 1_o st_o these_o leave_v we_o uncertain_a how_o particular_o to_o know_v and_o distinguish_v these_o fundamental_o and_o essential_o wherein_o only_o be_v schism_n from_o other_o point_n that_o be_v not_o so_o or_o they_o do_v enfold_v they_o all_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o creed_n where_o also_o they_o contend_v that_o they_o must_v not_o be_v extend_v to_o all_o the_o article_n thereof_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o one_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n communion_n for_o require_v his_o assent_n as_o a_o condition_n thereof_o in_o respect_n of_o some_o of_o these_o article_n yet_o will_v be_v no_o schismatic_a as_o they_o state_n schism_n nor_o none_o asleep_o schismatic_a that_o be_v not_o even_o in_o a_o fundamental_a a_o heretic_n again_o since_o several_a doctrine_n there_o be_v that_o be_v deliver_v by_o all_o former_a age_n which_o yet_o be_v not_o fundamental_a or_o essential_a to_o salvation_n or_o to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n thus_o the_o separate_n from_o all_o particular_a church_n or_o from_o our_o spiritual_a superior_n for_o any_o doctrine_n take_v for_o such_o will_v not_o be_v schism_n so_o one_o that_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o his_o superior_n for_o their_o require_v his_o assent_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o episcopal_a government_n of_o the_o church_n though_o he_o be_v a_o schismatic_a in_o dr._n hammonds_n account_n 163._o account_n schism_n p._n 163._o yet_o must_v be_v none_o in_o mr._n stillingfleet_v unless_o he_o will_v make_v espiscopacy_n essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n concern_v which_o i_o refer_v you_o to_o his_o irenicum_fw-la and_o so_o pronounce_v the_o presbyterian_a and_o transmarine_a reform_a congregation_n no_o church_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v of_o any_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o his_o superior_n require_v of_o he_o consent_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o first_o four_o allow_v general_a council_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o the_o first_o and_o pure_a age_n whether_o in_o government_n or_o other_o the_o like_a observance_n and_o practice_n which_o separation_n be_v by_o dr._n hammond_n 160._o hammond_n schim_n p._n 156._o 160._o declare_v schism_n but_o can_v be_v so_o upon_o mr._n stillingfleet_v thesis_n unless_o all_o these_o will_v be_v maintain_v by_o he_o fundamental_o and_o essential_o to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n i_o mean_v as_o to_o faith_n necessary_a for_o her_o attain_v salvation_n last_o mr._n stillingfleet_n say_v 356._o say_v p._n 356._o a_o church_n enjoin_v some_o dangeron_n error_n as_o
supernatural_a verity_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o christ_n his_o son_n 2_o lie_v the_o use_n of_o such_o holy_a ceremony_n and_o sacrament_n as_o he_o have_v institute_v and_o appoint_v 3_o lie_n a_o union_n or_o connexion_n of_o man_n in_o this_o profession_n and_o use_v of_o these_o sacrament_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n appoint_v authorize_v and_o sanctify_v to_o direct_v and_o lead_v they_o in_o the_o happy_a way_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n a_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n therefore_o have_v the_o two_o first_o property_n yet_o fail_v in_o the_o last_o a_o due_a union_n and_o connexion_n with_o the_o whole_a under_o its_o lawful_a superior_n of_o which_o see_v 2_o disc_n §_o 24._o want_v something_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o see_v also_o l._n 1._o c._n 13._o where_o he_o deny_v schismatic_n to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n i._n e._n catholic_n because_o though_o they_o retain_v a_o entire_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n as_o do_v say_v he_o the_o luciserians_n and_o some_o other_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o their_o schism_n yet_o they_o break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o refuse_v to_o submit_v themselves_o and_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n and_o their_o communion_n and_o conjunction_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o god_n people_n be_v in_o some_o thing_n only_o and_o not_o absolute_o in_o all_o wherein_o they_o have_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v fellowship_n thus_o dr._n field_n and_o much_o what_o the_o same_o you_o may_v find_v in_o dr._n ferne_n 48._o ferne_n the_o case_n between_o two_o church_n p._n 48._o quote_v before_o in_o 2_o disc_n §_o 24._o who_o on_o this_o account_n make_v presbyterian_o schismatic_n next_o see_v dr._n hammand_v treatise_n of_o schism_n where_o he_o make_v *_o that_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o which_o schism_n be_v a_o breach_n to_o consist_v in_o the_o preserve_a all_o those_o relation_n wherein_o each_o member_n be_v concern_v one_o towards_o another_o among_o which_o be_v that_o of_o subordination_n the_o unity_n whereof_o consist_v in_o a_o constant_a due_a subjection_n and_o obedience_n of_o all_o inferior_n to_o all_o their_o superior_n etc._n etc._n 3._o etc._n c._n 3._o §._o 3._o and_o *_o the_o deny_v this_o obedience_n in_o any_o particular_a lawful_a command_n of_o these_o superior_n or_o the_o cast_n off_o all_o obedience_n together_o dethrone_v they_o etc._n etc._n to_o be_v schism_n 9_o schism_n c._n 3._o §._o 9_o but_o this_o lawful_a command_n and_o so_o schism_n in_o disobey_v it_o may_v be_v in_o no_o fundamental_a point_n last_o thus_o bishop_n branhall_n 8._o branhall_n reply_v to_o chalced_a p._n 8._o that_o all_o schism_n be_v about_o essential_o of_o religion_n be_v a_o strange_a paradox_n many_o schism_n have_v arisen_a in_o the_o church_n about_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n about_o precedency_n about_o jurisdiction_n about_o right_n and_o liberty_n of_o particular_a church_n about_o matter_n of_o fact_n obstinacy_n in_o a_o small_a matter_n be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o schism_n from_o all_o these_o i_o think_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o a_o separation_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o our_o lawful_a superior_n for_o any_o thing_n true_a or_o lawful_a the_o practice_n or_o belief_n of_o which_o be_v enjoin_v by_o she_o as_o a_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n though_o this_o be_v not_o in_o fundamental_o be_v schism_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n learn_v protestant_n consent_v and_o then_o to_o learn_v in_o matter_n controvert_v and_o doubtful_a what_o be_v true_a and_o what_o be_v lawful_a we_o know_v to_o who_o judgement_n inferior_n and_o subject_n be_v direct_v to_o repair_v and_o if_o they_o will_v sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n themselves_o and_o judge_v it_o and_o happen_v to_o mistake_v i_o leave_v they_o to_o read_v their_o doom_n in_o d._n hammonds_n c._n 2._o of_o schism_n §_o 8._o now_o which_o way_n soever_o they_o turn_v sure_a to_o sin_n remain_v in_o error_n and_o schism_n on_o the_o one_o side_n if_o they_o desert_n upon_o this_o judgement_n the_o church_n communion_n and_o by_o fly_v from_o that_o advancing_z to_z lying_z and_o hypocrisy_n on_o the_o other_o side_n i._n e._n if_o they_o external_o profess_v contrary_a to_o their_o persuasion_n this_o from_o §_o 75._o concern_v some_o protestant_n restrain_v schism_n to_o a_o departure_n in_o the_o essential_o of_o religion_n §_o 61_o but_o the_o same_o person_n though_o they_o contract_v schism_n thus_o in_o the_o case_n of_o inferior_n yet_o in_o another_o way_n they_o enlarge_v it_o where_o catholic_n do_v not_o admit_v it_o namely_o to_o the_o church_n governor_n themselves_o affirm_v 1_o st_o '_o that_o they_o even_o in_o the_o supreme_a body_n of_o they_o lawful_a general_n council_n may_v err_v in_o non-fundamentalls_a and_o impose_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n follow_v with_o a_o excommunication_n of_o non-conformists'_a and_o 2_o lie_n that_o so_o often_o as_o they_o do_v so_o they_o in_o give_v such_o just_a cause_n of_o separation_n incur_v the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n 133.142_o schism_n ap._n laud_n p._n 133.142_o and_o thereby_o do_v become_v divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o which_o they_o will_v divide_v other_o 359._o other_o stillingfleet_n p._n 356._o etc._n etc._n 359._o for_o instance_n shall_v a_o general_n council_n consist_v both_o of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n and_o general_o accept_v §_o 62_o before_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n require_v assent_n to_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n in_o the_o eucharist_n to_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o st._n invocation_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n &c._n &c._n as_o they_o must_v grant_v that_o if_o both_o these_o church_n do_v not_o yet_o possible_o they_o may_v because_o protestant_n say_v 1_o that_o the_o whole_a may_v err_v in_o nonfundamentals_a and_o 2_o that_o these_o point_n be_v such_o they_o affirm_v that_o thus_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n will_v become_v schismatical_a and_o no_o long_a member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n mr._n stillingfleet_v word_n to_o this_o purpose_n be_v these_o 356._o these_o p._n 356._o '_o suppose_v any_o church_n though_o pretend_v to_o be_v never_o so_o catholic_n do_v restrain_v her_o communion_n within_o such_o narrow_a and_o unjust_a bound_n that_o she_o declare_v such_o excommunicate_a who_o do_v not_o approve_v all_o such_o error_n in_o doctrine_n and_o corruption_n in_o practice_n which_o the_o communion_n of_o such_o a_o church_n may_v be_v liable_a to_o i._n e._n when_o the_o error_n and_o corruption_n be_v such_o as_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n that_o church_n become_v thereby_o divide_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o all_o such_o who_o disowne_n such_o a_o unjust_a enclosure_n do_v not_o so_o much_o divide_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n so_o enclose_v as_o return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o universal_a church_n and_o p._n 359._o he_o say_v whatever_o church_n make_v such_o extrinsecall_n oppose_a so_o essential_a thing_n the_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n so_o as_o to_o cast_v man_n out-of_a the_o church_n who_o yield_v not_o to_o they_o thereby_o divide_v itself_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o separation_n from_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v schism_n that_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n on_o those_o term_n only_o return_v they_o to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o p._n 617._o he_o say_v that_o he_o can_v possible_o discern_v any_o difference_n between_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_n concern_v the_o donatist_n which_o catholic_n pronounce_v they_o schismatic_n and_o no_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_n of_o the_o protestant_n concern_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n thus_o he_o but_o here_o 1_o st_z from_o this_o assertion_n that_o that_o church_n which_o require_v unjust_a thing_n as_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n do_v hereupon_o divide_v herself_o and_o so_o become_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o again_o that_o those_o be_v unjust_a condition_n of_o communion_n which_o protestant_n have_v style_v to_o be_v so_o it_o follow_v 1_o st_o that_o since_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la the_o present_a eastern_a and_o greek_n as_o well_o as_o western_a and_o roman-churche_n do_v require_v as_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o even_o in_o their_o public_a liturgy_n several_a thing_n which_o protestant_n call_v unjust_a therefore_o the_o eastern_a as_o well_o as_o western_a according_a to_o their_o thesis_fw-la must_v stand_v divide_v from_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o now_o only_o the_o reform_a be_v that_o church_n catholic_n the_o perpetual_a existence_n of_o which_o
at_o last_o convert_v whether_o it_o i_o say_v now_o after_o a_o 150_o year_n continuance_n have_v make_v any_o progress_n suitable_a to_o such_o a_o effect_n as_o be_v the_o reduce_n of_o all_o nation_n to_o its_o profession_n or_o rather_o whether_o after_o it_o have_v make_v a_o sudden_a increase_n at_o 1_o st_z as_o new_a thing_n take_v most_o and_o infancy_n grow_v fast_o it_o do_v not_o seem_v already_o long_o ago_o to_o be_v past_o its_o full_a growth_n and_o now_o rather_o decline_v and_o wither_v and_o lose_v ground_n in_o many_o place_n where_o it_o be_v former_o well_o root_v whilst_o that_o antichrist_n which_o it_o promise_v to_o destroy_v acquire_v more_o strength_n and_o daily_o enlarge_v his_o dominion_n to_o which_o i_o may_v add_v *_o whether_o since_o protestancy_n be_v divide_v into_o so_o many_o sect_n sever_v under_o so_o many_o differ_v secular_a head_n the_o nation_n at_o length_n convert_v by_o they_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v by_o some_o to_o the_o purity_n yet_o will_v not_o still_o in_o general_a want_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n but_o to_o return_v all_o this_o authority_n we_o find_v one_o present_a body_n use_v now_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v ancient_o and_o among_o other_o thing_n this_o body_n also_o entitle_v itself_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n so_o that_o if_o there_o be_v a_o catholic_n church_n still_o which_o stand_v invest_v with_o that_o authority_n that_o our_o lord_n bestow_v on_o it_o and_o which_o the_o former_a church_n practise_v then_o see_v that_o all_o other_o christian_a society_n do_v renounce_v and_o not_o pretend_v at_o all_o to_o such_o a_o authority_n i_o mean_v the_o require_v from_o their_o subject_n a_o assent_n and_o submission_n of_o judgement_n to_o their_o decree_n as_o infallible_a in_o all_o necessary_a faith_n declare_v heretic_n those_o that_o oppose_v their_o doctrine_n and_o schismatic_n that_o relinquish_v their_o communion_n and_o question_v this_o other_o church_n also_o for_o use_v it_o it_o follow_v that_o either_o this_o must_v be_v the_o sole_a church-catholick_n that_o thus_o bear_v witness_n to_o itself_o that_o it_o be_v so_o or_o that_o what_o ever_o church_n beside_o pretend_v itself_o catholic_n do_v not_o exercise_n or_o own_o that_o just_a power_n and_o those_o privilege_n with_o which_o our_o lord_n have_v endow_v it_o we_o find_v further_o this_o present_a church_n very_o vigilant_a and_o zealous_a in_o vindicate_v the_o honour_n and_o authority_n the_o custom_n the_o decree_n of_o former_a church_n and_o pretend_v what_o ever_o in_o truth_n it_o do_v most_o strict_o to_o follow_v its_o footstep_n extol_v the_o father_n number_v allow_v and_o challenge_v the_o council_n as_o if_o it_o think_v they_o most_o advantageous_a on_o its_o side_n and_o carry_v its_o self_n to_o this_o old_a mother_n with_o such_o expression_n of_o affection_n as_o if_o it_o only_o be_v her_o true_a daughter_n therefore_o conjoin_v the_o tradition_n of_o former_a church_n interpret_n scripture_n together_o with_o the_o text_n thereof_o for_o the_o steady_a guide_n of_o its_o proceed_n in_o establish_v truth_n and_o convince_a heresy_n and_o profess_v to_o handle_v thing_n controvert_v conduct_v controvert_v council_n trident_n sess_n 18._o salu._n conduct_v secundum_fw-la sacram_fw-la scripturam_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la traditiones_fw-la probata_fw-la concilia_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la consensum_fw-la &_o sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la authoritates_fw-la we_o find_v it_o with_o the_o same_o zeal_n celebrate_v a_o honourable_a memory_n of_o the_o father_n ancient_a martyr_n confessor_n and_o doctor_n in_o its_o public_a liturgy_n insert_v therein_o both_o their_o traditionary_a comment_n on_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o a_o abridgement_n of_o their_o holy_a life_n there_o praise_v god_n for_o their_o pious_a example_n and_o provoke_v her_o present_a child_n to_o a_o emulation_n of_o their_o virtue_n whilst_o another_o party_n in_o its_o pretend_v a_o reformation_n to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o in_o its_o new_a service_n expunge_v both_o the_o lection_n take_v out_o of_o these_o father_n and_o the_o narrative_a of_o their_o life_n we_o find_v it_o *_o retain_v the_o same_o public_a service_n of_o the_o mass_n with_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o former_a age_n as_o its_o adversary_n confess_v missae_fw-la confess_v d●_n field_n p._n 188._o chemnit_fw-la exam._n conc._n trid._n part_n 2._o the_o canone_o missae_fw-la for_o this_o 1000_o year_n i.e._n from_o the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n if_o not_o without_o some_o small_a addition_n of_o something_o new_a yet_o without_o change_n of_o what_o be_v the_o former_a and_o *_o much_o resemble_v the_o visage_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n especial_o that_o after_o constantine_n when_o by_o the_o more_o copious_a write_n of_o those_o flourish_a time_n we_o come_v better_a to_o discern_v that_o church_n complexion_n in_o its_o altar_n and_o a_o quotidian_a sacrifice_n in_o its_o frequency_n of_o public_a assembly_n and_o devotion_n solemn_a observance_n of_o feast_n vigil_n and_o fast_n gravity_n and_o magnificence_n of_o its_o ceremony_n in_o its_o pretention_n of_o miracle_n and_o extraordinary_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o several_a of_o its_o member_n in_o its_o high_a veneration_n of_o the_o celestial_a favourite_n who_o stand_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n and_o daily_a communication_n by_o commemorate_n the_o saint_n depart_v with_o the_o church_n triumphant_a and_o in_o the_o honour_n do_v to_o their_o holy_a relic_n in_o its_o charitable_a office_n perform_v for_o those_o other_o more_o imperfect_a faithful_a soul_n who_o condition_n in_o the_o next_o world_n it_o conceive_v betterable_a by_o its_o prayer_n and_o oblation_n in_o its_o distinction_n of_o sin_n and_o use_v of_o its_o key_n towards_o great_a offender_n in_o retirement_n from_o the_o world_n for_o a_o near_a converse_n with_o god_n and_o the_o free_a exercise_n of_o meditation_n and_o devotion_n in_o its_o variety_n of_o religious_a order_n votary_n and_o fraternity_n in_o its_o advance_v the_o observance_n of_o the_o evangelical_n council_n its_o high_a esteem_n *_o of_o voluntary_a poverty_n i._n e._n relinquish_a all_o particular_a propriety_n and_o enjoy_v only_a necessary_n in_o common_a *_o of_o virginity_n and_o continency_n and_o *_o of_o yield_v a_o undispute_a obedience_n in_o licitis_fw-la to_o all_o the_o law_n and_o command_n of_o a_o superior_a in_o the_o single_a life_n and_o sequestration_n from_o worldly_a encumbrance_n of_o its_o clergy_n oblige_v to_o a_o daily_a task_n of_o long_a devotion_n and_o purity_n of_o conscience_n and_o corporal_a abstinence_n suitable_a to_o their_o attendance_n on_o the_o altar_n and_o there_o daily_o or_o very_o frequent_o offer_v the_o commemorative_n sacrifice_n of_o our_o lord_n all_o satisfactory_a passion_n and_o comunicate_v his_o most_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o like_a relation_n with_o those_o of_o all_o past_a age_n concern_v the_o eminent_a virtue_n shine_v in_o and_o divine_a favour_n bestow_v on_o those_o holy_a person_n who_o have_v live_v in_o its_o communion_n their_o great_a austerity_n and_o mortification_n exstafy_v vision_n prediction_n miracle_n etc._n etc._n which_o story_n if_o they_o be_v all_o suppose_a lie_n and_o fiction_n and_o hypocrisy_n all_o i_o say_v or_o most_o of_o they_o for_o that_o some_o counterfeit_n will_v mingle_v themselves_o among_o truth_n there_o be_v no_o question_n yet_o such_o lie_n be_v also_o find_v in_o all_o age_n even_o from_o the_o apostolical_a time_n nor_o be_v the_o present_a age_n more_o guilty_a of_o they_o than_o the_o precedent_n as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o compare_v the_o story_n relate_v by_o s._n austin_n 8._o austin_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la l._n 22._o c._n 8._o the_o saint_n live_v write_v by_o s._n jerome_n gregory_n nyssen_n theodoret_n severus_n paulinus_n palladius_n gregory_n the_o great_a gregory_n of_o tours_n bede_n bonaventure_n bernard_n and_o other_o ancient_a author_n with_o the_o modern_a whilst_o all_o other_o religion_n meanwhile_o have_v such_o a_o disparity_n to_o antiquity_n that_o in_o they_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v at_o least_o feign_v but_o indeed_o do_v not_o many_o of_o these_o story_n contain_v a_o certain_a truth_n it_o can_v be_v imagine_v that_o so_o many_o person_n repute_v of_o great_a sanctity_n and_o devotion_n and_o several_a of_o they_o contemporary_a to_o those_o who_o life_n they_o record_v shall_v have_v write_v they_o with_o so_o full_a a_o testimony_n to_o many_o thing_n not_o as_o hear_v of_o other_o but_o see_v by_o themselves_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o its_o adherent_n so_o persevere_v in_o the_o step_n of_o antiquity_n thus_o grotius_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o votum_fw-la pro_fw-la pace_n give_v account_n there_o of_o his_o study_n in_o read_v the_o father_n collegi_fw-la say_v he_o quae_fw-la essent_fw-la illa_fw-la quae_fw-la veterum_fw-la testimonio_fw-la
former_a council_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o precede_a age_n have_v receive_v as_o general_n or_o oblige_v as_o well_o those_o council_n since_o as_o those_o before_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o century_n which_o late_a the_o other_o party_n reject_v §_o 37._o chap._n 5._o the_o pretend_a security_n of_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v any_o certain_a live_a or_o personal_a guide_n infallible_a in_o necessary_n affirm_v 1._o that_o all_o necessary_a matter_n of_o faith_n be_v even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a clear_a in_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o controversy_n in_o non-necessaries_a needless_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 38._o 2._o that_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_a in_o scripture_n because_o god_n have_v leave_v no_o other_o certain_a mean_n rule_n or_o guide_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o they_o save_o the_o scripture_n §_o 39_o n._n 1._o not_o any_o certain_a live_a guide_n 1._o which_o be_v infallible_a as_o their_o guide_n the_o scripture_n be_v §_o 39_o n._n 2._o 2._o which_o the_o unlearned_a in_o any_o division_n can_v discern_v from_o the_o false_a guide_n or_o know_v their_o decree_n better_o than_o the_o scripture_n 3._o from_o who_o the_o scripture_n direct_v they_o to_o learn_v necessary_n or_o tell_v they_o what_o church_n or_o party_n they_o be_v to_o adhere_v to_o in_o any_o schism_n make_v in_o which_o infallible_a guide_n if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o as_o be_v a_o thing_n of_o the_o great_a concernment_n the_o scripture_n will_v not_o have_v be_v silent_a ibid._n reply_n 1._o that_o evidence_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v the_o usual_a plea_n of_o former_a heretic_n in_o their_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n §_o 40._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o main_a and_o principal_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o deny_v by_o roman_a catholic_n but_o only_o the_o clearness_n thereof_o as_o to_o all_o man_n capacity_n question_v and_o another_o guide_n hold_v necessary_a §_o 40._o n._n 2._o it_o be_v reply_v then_o 1._o concern_v the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n 1_o that_o some_o controversy_n in_o religion_n since_o the_o write_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v concern_v point_n necessary_a as_o those_o controversy_n concern_v the_o trinity_n the_o deity_n and_o humanity_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n etc._n etc._n §_o 41._o 2._o that_o the_o more_o clear_a all_o necessary_n be_v in_o scripture_n still_o with_o the_o more_o security_n may_v christian_n rely_v for_o they_o on_o the_o church_n judgement_n from_o which_o also_o they_o receive_v these_o scripture_n §_o 42._o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o man_n clear_o 1._o because_o it_o be_v sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v leave_v this_o one_o point_n clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o we_o shall_v in_o all_o difficulty_n and_o obscurity_n of_o they_o follow_v the_o direction_n and_o adhere_v to_o the_o exposition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o these_o guide_n §_o 43._o 2._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o other_o apostolical_a tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n all_o such_o necessary_a truth_n to_o be_v successive_o communicate_v by_o they_o to_o his_o people_n §_o 44._o 3._o sufficient_a if_o god_n have_v by_o tradition_n at_o least_o clear_o reveal_v to_o these_o church-guide_n the_o sense_n of_o such_o scripture_n as_o be_v in_o point_n necessary_a any_o way_n obscure_a ibid._n 4._o sufficient_a if_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n have_v clear_o enough_o reveal_v all_o necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o capacity_n of_o these_o church-guide_n use_v due_a mean_n though_o he_o have_v not_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o unlearned_a for_o from_o those_o these_o may_v learn_v they_o §_o 45._o ii_o concern_v a_o live_a guide_n 1._o that_o where_o the_o scripture_n especial_o several_a text_n compare_v be_v ambiguous_a and_o in_o controversy_n the_o christian_n guide_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n can_v be_v the_o scripture_n but_o either_o the_o church_n or_o their_o own_o judgement_n §_o 46._o n._n 1._o 2._o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n shall_v direct_v christian_n to_o what_o guide_n they_o be_v to_o repair_v §_o 46._o n._n 2._o or_o to_o what_o church_n prelate_n or_o party_n in_o any_o schism_n christian_n for_o ever_o ought_v to_o adhere_v §_o 47._o n._n 2._o 3._o yet_o that_o god_n have_v give_v christian_n a_o sufficient_a direction_n herein_o in_o his_o leave_v a_o due_a subordination_n among_o these_o governor_n whereby_o the_o inferior_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o superior_a and_o a_o par●_n unto_o the_o whole_a §_o 47._o n._n 3._o and_o that_o christian_n may_v more_o clear_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o definition_n in_o matter_n controvert_v than_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 48._o the_o three_o discourse_n examine_v what_o measure_n of_o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o these_o guide_n and_o to_o the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n of_o controversy_n the_o content_n chap._n 1._o roman_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n do_v agree_v 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o those_o book_n by_o the_o protestant_n style_v canonical_a be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o in_o these_o scripture_n agree_v on_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o necessary_n §_o 2._o 3._o that_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v contradistinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n §_o 4._o 4._o that_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o his_o church_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 5._o chap._n 2._o catholic_n go_v on_o and_o affirm_v 5._o that_o the_o church_n guide_v at_o least_o assemble_v in_o lawful_a general_n council_n shall_v never_o err_v in_o their_o determine_a thing_n of_o necessary_a faith_n §_o 6._o 6._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o necessary_n not_o take_v for_o those_o that_o be_v absolute_o require_v but_o for_o all_o that_o be_v very_o beneficial_a to_o salvation_n §_o 9_o 7._o shall_v never_o err_v in_o they_o not_o as_o infalliblly_v inspire_v to_o teach_v any_o new_a but_o as_o divine_o assist_v in_o deliver_v of_o the_o former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n wherein_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n be_v for_o ever_o preserve_v equal_o infallible_a §_o 10._o 8._o that_o for_o know_v what_o or_o how_o many_o of_o former_a council_n have_v be_v lawful_o general_n and_o oblige_v a_o christian_a may_v safe_o rely_v on_o the_o general_n judgement_n of_o the_o church_n since_o the_o sit_v of_o such_o council_n §_o 11._o 9_o that_o in_o the_o absence_n of_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o church-governor_n from_o some_o council_n yet_o their_o acceptance_n of_o its_o decree_n or_o concurrence_n with_o its_o doctrine_n render_v it_o equivalent_a to_o a_o council_n general_n §_o 13._o 10._o that_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n part_n of_o the_o whole_a be_v oblige_v to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n and_o yield_v their_o assent_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o whole_a §_o 14._o chap._n 3_o 11._o that_o whatever_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n hold_v the_o contrary_a to_o any_o know_a definition_n pass_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n of_o any_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v heretical_a §_o 16._o 12._o that_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n which_o for_o any_o cause_n whatever_o do_v actual_o relinquish_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n be_v schismatical_a §_o 20._o 13._o but_o yet_o that_o several_a person_n or_o church_n coordinate_a may_v without_o schism_n differ_v in_o any_o thing_n opinion_n or_o practice_v wherein_o they_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o accord_v by_o their_o common_a superior_n or_o by_o the_o whole_a §_o 23._o chap._n 4._o but_o protestant_n after_o the_o four_o first_o proposition_n concede_v in_o some_o sense_n do_v thus_o endeavour_v to_o qualify_v and_o restrain_v they_o 5._o in_o grant_v the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n unerrable_a in_o necessary_n they_o understand_v only_o such_o few_o necessary_n without_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o which_o salvation_n can_v be_v attain_v §_o 24._o 6._o therefore_o also_o they_o affirm_v that_o though_o the_o church_n catholic_n can_v err_v in_o such_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n yet_o it_o or_o all_o particular_a church_n in_o some_o one_o age_n or_o age_n may_v in_o other_o the_o error_n wherein_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n gross_a damnable_a etc._n etc._n §_o 25._o because_o it_o appear_v that_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n from_o which_o protestant_n dissent_v be_v general_a tenant_n and_o practice_n
another_o and_o so_o a_o just_a fear_n of_o less_o integrity_n last_o if_o these_o against_o the_o whole_a can_v have_v any_o authority_n the_o proceed_n of_o general_a council_n in_o condemn_v and_o exercise_v ecclesiastical_a censure_n against_o they_o as_o subject_n to_o those_o court_n have_v be_v unjust_a which_o yet_o those_o general_n council_n universal_o allow_v have_v use_v not_o only_o against_o bishop_n but_o patriarch_n and_o the_o clergy_n join_v with_o they_o and_o the_o church_n decree_n thus_o will_v be_v necessary_o obligatory_a never_o but_o when_o the_o governor_n thereof_o to_o a_o man_n or_o to_o every_o particular_a church_n or_o society_n of_o churchman_n be_v all_o of_o a_o mind_n neither_o can_v the_o people_n when_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n which_o consist_v of_o many_o judge_n be_v any_o way_n divide_v tell_v which_o to_o obey_v if_o our_o saviour_n promise_n be_v only_o to_o some_o certain_a guide_n we_o know_v not_o in_o how_o small_a a_o number_n because_o they_o know_v not_o whether_o our_o saviour_n promise_n of_o indefectibility_n even_o in_o necessary_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o more_o inconsiderable_a part_n thereof_o he_o that_o appoint_v we_o to_o follow_v a_o guide_n in_o what_o it_o shall_v enjoin_v we_o and_o then_o leave_v we_o no_o way_n when_o our_o guide_n consist_v not_o of_o one_o but_o many_o person_n and_o particular_a church_n and_o when_o two_o party_n of_o they_o contradict_v one_o another_o and_o guide_v we_o contrary_a way_n to_o know_v which_o of_o they_o be_v to_o be_v our_o guide_n it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o leave_v we_o no_o guide_n and_o he_o that_o tie_v we_o beside_o our_o own_o judgement_n in_o doubtful_a matter_n to_o obey_v and_o follow_v only_o some_o ecclesiastical_a person_n or_o other_o not_o oblige_v we_o to_o the_o most_o or_o major_a part_n to_o the_o superior_a rather_o than_o a_o inferior_a person_n or_o court_n revolve_v our_o obedience_n in_o any_o division_n of_o our_o governor_n only_o to_o our_o own_o judgement_n i._n e._n to_o choose_v that_o side_n which_o we_o judge_v be_v most_o conformable_a to_o scripture_n as_o we_o follow_v the_o counsel_n of_o that_o friend_n who_o we_o think_v speak_v most_o reason_n but_o can_v this_o be_v call_v any_o obebedience_n to_o his_o authority_n and_o then_o leave_v to_o this_o choice_n what_o opinion_n can_v ourselves_o take_v up_o that_o be_v so_o absurd_a in_o which_o we_o can_v find_v some_o clergy_n or_o other_o for_o our_o leader_n this_o concern_v these_o protestant-divines_a allow_v a_o absolute_a promise_n of_o indefectibility_n as_o to_o necessary_n make_v to_o and_o always_o verify_v in_o some_o person_n or_o also_o some_o body_n and_o society_n or_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n i.e._n of_o the_o church-guide_n but_o not_o to_o these_o always_o in_o such_o a_o capacity_n as_o that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o church_n constitution_n and_o tradition_n to_o be_v our_o guide_n these_o orthodox-guide_n as_o they_o suppose_v be_v perhaps_o in_o some_o age_n a_o very_a small_a number_n nor_o those_o of_o the_o high_a rank_n in_o comparison_n of_o the_o rest_n chap._n v._n iii_o other_o expression_n of_o protestant-divines_a grant_v the_o church_n prelacy_n as_o define_v her_o doctrine_n or_o the_o general_a council_n of_o they_o to_o be_v unerrable_a in_o necessary_n §_o 32_o when_o accept_v by_o the_o church_n universal_a §_o 32._o the_o expression_n of_o *_o dr._n potter_n §_o 33._o *_o of_o bishop_n bramhall_n §_o 34._o where_o dissent_v iii_o 3._o other_o expression_n of_o protestant-divines_a grant_v the_o church_n clergy_n as_o define_v her_o doctrine_n or_o the_o general_a council_n of_o they_o to_o be_v unerrable_a in_o necessary_n but_o then_o only_o when_o universal_o accept_v no_o considerable_a person_n or_o at_o least_o church_n dissent_v concern_v what_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n sufficient_o oblige_v her_o subject_n in_o respect_n one_a of_o the_o church-catholick_n diffusive_a §_o 36._o n._n 1._o 2ly_a of_o council_n general_n §_o 36._o n._n 3._o 3ly_a of_o council_n occidental_a §_o 36._o n._n 8._o where_o particular_o of_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n §_o 36._o n._n 9_o *_o of_o bishop_n lawd_n §_o 37._o where_o concern_v what_o acceptation_n of_o council_n by_o the_o church-diffusive_a be_v only_o necessary_a §_o 38._o *_o of_o dr._n field_n §_o 40._o iii_o but_o three_o several_a other_o expression_n may_v be_v find_v in_o some_o of_o they_o wherein_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o go_v further_o yet_o and_o to_o allow_v that_o the_o church-catholick_n take_v in_o general_a or_o in_o her_o great_a body_n of_o clergy_n as_o she_o be_v a_o canonical_a guide_n and_o as_o she_o teach_v and_o define_v doctrine_n can_v never_o err_v in_o necessary_n or_o fundamental_o but_o whether_o all_o their_o expression_n cohere_v one_o with_o another_o or_o whether_o their_o opinion_n when_o strong_o assault_v will_v not_o retreat_v and_o resolve_v itself_o into_o the_o first_o or_o second_o already_o explain_v i_o conclude_v nothing_o §_o 33_o for_o this_o see_v first_o that_o of_o dr._n potter_n §_o 2._o p._n 28._o where_o he_o say_v potter_n expression_n of_o dr._n potter_n the_o church_n catholic_n be_v confess_v in_o some_o sense_n i._n e._n in_o fundamental_o as_o he_o explain_v it_o afterward_o §_o 5._o p._n 148_o etc._n etc._n too_o be_v unerring_a and_o he_o be_v little_o better_a than_o a_o pagan_a that_o despise_v her_o judgement_n for_o she_o follow_v her_o guide_n the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n and_o be_v not_o very_o free_a and_o forward_o in_o her_o definition_n here_o we_o hear_v of_o definition_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n that_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v therefore_o i_o infer_v that_o such_o judgement_n may_v be_v know_v so_o §_o 4._o p._n 97._o the_o catholic_n church_n say_v he_o be_v careful_a to_o ground_v all_o her_o declaration_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n write_v word_n and_o therefore_o whosoever_o wilful_o oppose_v a_o judgement_n so_o well_o ground_v be_v just_o esteem_v a_o heretic_n then_o he_o add_v not_o proper_o because_o he_o disobey_v the_o church_n but_o because_o he_o yield_v not_o to_o scripture_n sufficient_o propound_v or_o clear_v unto_o he_o where_v i_o do_v not_o see_v but_o that_o whoso_o believe_v this_o in_o general_n as_o all_o aught_o that_o the_o church_n catholic_n always_o ground_v her_o declaration_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n on_o divine_a authority_n though_o every_o particular_a declaration_n of_o she_o be_v not_o clear_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v so_o well_o ground_v yet_o must_v needs_o wilful_o and_o self-convicted_n oppose_v her_o judgement_n and_o so_o incur_v heresy_n but_o however_o he_o be_v or_o be_v not_o a_o heretic_n who_o dissent_v from_o such_o decree_n yet_o by_o the_o doctor_n all_o those_o it_o seem_v be_v secure_v as_o for_o necessary_a truth_n that_o do_v obey_v and_o adhere_v to_o they_o and_o §_o 5._o p._n 169._o if_o in_o any_o thing_n say_v he_o general_a council_n err_v and_o mistake_v the_o universal_a church_n have_v mean_n of_o remedy_n either_o by_o antiquate_v those_o error_n with_o a_o general_n and_o tacit_n consent_n general_n consent_v therefore_o such_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n to_o tender_v it_o non-obligatory_a must_v be_v at_o least_o tacit_o reverse_v by_o a_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n else_o if_o any_o single_a church_n reversion_n serve_v the_o turn_n to_o annul_v the_o obligation_n thereof_o no_o church_n be_v oblige_v to_o such_o decree_n further_o than_o they_o please_v or_o by_o represent_v herself_o again_o in_o another_o general_n council_n which_o may_v view_v and_o correct_v the_o defect_n of_o the_o former_a hear_v be_v two_o way_n of_o the_o church_n catholick'_v correct_v the_o error_n of_o her_o representative_a the_o council_n 1._o either_o by_o general_o not_o observe_v or_o practise_v their_o decree_n 2._o or_o by_o condemn_v they_o by_o another_o representative_a therefore_o i_o gather_v where_o the_o church_n catholic_n neither_o by_o another_o general_a council_n contradict_v such_o assembly_n nor_o in_o her_o most_o general_a practice_n or_o doctrine_n vary_v from_o its_o decree_n the_o definition_n and_o judgement_n of_o such_o a_o general_n council_n be_v admit_v as_o the_o definition_n and_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o else_o there_o be_v no_o way_n of_o know_v what_o or_o which_o be_v so_o ib._n after_o that_o p._n 141._o he_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o present_a church-catholick_n her_o be_v as_o a_o candlestick_n to_o present_v and_o hold_v out_o the_o light_n to_o we_o and_o p._n 143._o of_o her_o be_v a_o witness_n and_o a_o instrument_n for_o work_a faith_n in_o we_o he_o p._n 148_o 149_o 156._o accord_v as_o he_o say_v with_o some_o moderate_a roman_a writer_n that_o the_o
some_o of_o they_o enemy_n to_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o divide_v into_o so_o many_o communion_n that_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o man_n how_o they_o shall_v be_v regular_o assemble_v i_o say_v here_o he_o add_v 352._o add_v schism_n guard_v p._n 352._o that_o because_o it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o the_o turk_n will_v send_v his_o subject_n that_o be_v four_o of_o the_o proto-patriarch_n with_o their_o clergy_n to_o a_o general_n council_n or_o allow_v they_o to_o meet_v open_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n in_o a_o general_n council_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o much_o against_o his_o own_o interest_n that_o therefore_o if_o these_o patriarch_n do_v deliver_v the_o sense_n and_o suffrage_n of_o their_o church_n by_o letter_n or_o by_o messenger_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o council_n general_n and_o that_o as_o there_o have_v be_v general_a oriental_a council_n without_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o a_o western_a bishop_n so_o there_o may_v be_v a_o occidental_a council_n i_o add_v general_n without_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o one_o eastern_a bishop_n by_o the_o sole_a communication_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o their_o faith_n and_o for_o the_o call_n also_o of_o this_o general_a council_n 2._o §._o 35._o n._n 2._o he_o say_v 356._o say_v ib._n p._n 356._o that_o if_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o right_n either_o to_o convocate_v general_a council_n himself_o or_o to_o represent_v to_o christian_a sovereign_n the_o fit_a season_n for_o convocation_n of_o they_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o beginning_n of_o unity_n or_o of_o his_o protopatriarchate_a he_o do_v not_o envy_v it_o he_o since_o there_o may_v be_v a_o good_a use_n of_o it_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o division_n of_o the_o empire_n so_o good_a caution_n be_v observe_v and_o before_o p._n 91._o he_o say_v that_o at_o present_a he_o will_v not_o dispute_v whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o his_o repute_a primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n may_v lawful_o call_v a_o ecumenical_a or_o occidental_a council_n by_o power_n pure_o spiritual_a which_o consist_v rather_o in_o advice_n than_o in_o mandate_n proper_o so_o call_v or_o in_o mandate_n of_o courtesy_n not_o coactive_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n that_o consider_v the_o division_n and_o subdivision_n of_o the_o ancient_a empire_n and_o the_o present_a distraction_n of_o christendom_n it_o seem_v not_o altogether_o inconvenient_a that_o the_o primitive_a father_n do_v assemble_v synod_n and_o make_v canon_n before_o there_o be_v any_o christian_a emperor_n but_o that_o be_v by_o authority_n mere_o spiritual_a they_o have_v no_o coactive_a power_n to_o compel_v any_o man_n against_o his_o will_n and_o the_o uttermost_a they_o can_v do_v be_v to_o separate_v he_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v who_o contemn_v their_o summons_n or_o their_o canon_n from_o their_o communion_n and_o to_o leave_v he_o to_o the_o come_n or_o judgement_n of_o christ_n ib._n p._n 120._o he_o seem_v to_o allow_v the_o church-governor_n a_o right_a to_o summon_v council_n where_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n sovereign_n to_o do_v it_o i._n e._n that_o will_v do_v it_o and_o to_o make_v canon_n such_o as_o the_o primitive_a bishop_n make_v before_o there_o be_v christian_a emperor_n only_a i_o hope_v he_o will_v consequent_o allow_v further_o what_o be_v do_v also_o by_o these_o church-governor_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n that_o if_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n have_v authority_n as_o need_n require_v to_o summon_v such_o a_o meeting_n they_o may_v appoint_v some_o place_n for_o it_o which_o place_n will_v always_o be_v in_o some_o prince_n temporal_a dominion_n and_o that_o if_o they_o may_v make_v canon_n they_o may_v divulge_v and_o send_v abroad_o their_o law_n and_o canon_n to_o the_o church_n subject_n upon_o spiritu●l_a censure_n inflict_v on_o the_o disobedient_a which_o must_v be_v also_o among_o some_o temporal_a prince_n his_o subject_n for_o so_o do_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o first_o council_n 15._o council_n act._n 15._o appoint_v the_o place_n of_o their_o meeting_n jerusalem_n and_o send_v abroad_o their_o canon_n among_o the_o emperor_n subject_n both_o contrary_a to_o the_o then_o secular_a power_n and_o this_o without_o entrench_v on_o any_o one_o politic_a right_n the_o bishop_n have_v condescend_v to_o thus_o much_o concern_v general_n council_n 3._o §._o 35._o n._n 3._o he_o yield_v further_a presat_fw-la further_a reply_v to_o chalced_a presat_fw-la that_o until_o such_o council_n the_o most_o general_a that_o be_v procurable_a he_o submit_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherein_o he_o be_v baptize_v or_o to_o a_o national_a english_a syxod_n but_o here_o he_o make_v too_o great_a a_o leap_n though_o perhaps_o he_o have_v some_o reason_n for_o it_o in_o remove_v his_o submission_n immediate_o from_o a_o general_n to_o a_o national_a synod_n of_o his_o own_o church_n for_o between_o these_o lie_v a_o patriarchal_a or_o occidental_a synod_n to_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o submit_v the_o just_a authority_n also_o of_o which_o above_o a_o national_a synod_n he_o elsewhere_o both_o free_o maintain_v 258._o maintain_v vindic._n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 258._o and_o though_o not_o here_o yet_o elsewhere_o he_o also_o refer_v his_o trial_n to_o it_o there_o be_v nothing_o say_v he_o schism_n guard_v p._n 136._o that_o we_o long_v after_o more_o than_o a_o general_n council_n right_o call_v right_o proceed_v or_o in_o defect_n of_o that_o a_o free_a occidental_a council_n as_o general_a as_o may_v be_v but_o then_o we_o will_v have_v the_o bishop_n to_o renounce_v that_o oath_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o have_v be_v obtrude_v upon_o they_o last_o concern_v the_o quality_n of_o obedience_n due_a to_o such_o council_n even_o in_o nonfundamentals_a he_o say_v 27._o say_v vindic._n of_o the_o church_n of_o engl._n p._n 27._o that_o as_o to_o question_v none_o fundamental_a when_o these_o be_v once_o define_v by_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n all_o christian_n though_o they_o can_v assent_v in_o their_o judgement_n be_v oblige_v to_o passive_a obedience_n to_o possess_v their_o soul_n in_o patience_n and_o they_o who_o shall_v oppose_v the_o authority_n and_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n where_o also_o he_o make_v this_o the_o four_o way_n of_o render_v one_o self_n guilty_a of_o heretical_a pravity_n i_o suppose_v because_o though_o the_o council_n determination_n in_o his_o opinion_n make_v no_o point_n heresy_n yet_o at_o least_o it_o equal_v the_o crime_n of_o the_o opposer_n to_o that_o of_o a_o heretic_n i_o have_v be_v somewhat_o copious_a in_o give_v you_o the_o condescension_n of_o this_o bishop_n 1._o §._o 36._o n._n 1._o not_o to_o make_v advantage_n of_o what_o a_o single_a author_n indulge_v oblige_v reply_n where_o conc._n what_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n sufficient_o oblige_v but_o because_o they_o seem_v no_o great_a than_o reason_n require_v and_o what_o all_o protestant_n allow_v a_o church-government_n aught_o to_o stand_v to_o and_o therefore_o i_o desire_v your_o leave_n before_o i_o proceed_v to_o some_o other_o quotation_n to_o reflect_v a_o little_a on_o this_o submission_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o to_o see_v how_o far_o it_o true_o perform_v will_v rational_o carry_v he_o or_o other_o towards_o a_o present_a settlement_n in_o many_o of_o the_o point_v controvert_v 1_o then_o this_o i_o presume_v here_o aught_o to_o be_v grant_v i_o that_o in_o the_o bishop_n or_o other_o profess_v a_o submission_n to_o the_o general_n or_o vnanimous_a accord_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n in_o any_o doctrine_n or_o practise_v this_o accord_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v take_v so_o strict_o either_o for_o what_o be_v define_v by_o council_n or_o accept_v by_o the_o church_n diffusive_a as_o that_o if_o any_o particular_a person_n church_n or_o party_n perhaps_o his_o own_o that_o be_v hold_v catholic_n dissent_n in_o any_o thing_n from_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v a_o much_o major_a part_n in_o respect_n thereof_o and_o join_v also_o with_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o primate_n of_o the_o patriarch_n he_o shall_v account_v himself_o discharge_v from_o obedience_n or_o deny_v such_o a_o consent_n to_o be_v sufficient_o general_n and_o unanimous_a to_o oblige_v he_o concern_v which_o see_v more_o disc_n 2._o §_o 25._o and_o before_o §_o 31._o 2._o this_o premise_a come_v we_o now_o to_o the_o bishop_n submission_n 2._o §._o 36._o n._n 2._o which_o be_v promise_v 1_o st_z to_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n viz._n to_o all_o thing_n universal_o believe_v or_o practise_v by_o it_o 2_o lie_n to_o free_a general_n 3_o lie_n or_o also_o free_a occidental_a council_n which_o to_o review_v in_o their_o order_n diffusive_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o church_n
catholic_n diffusive_a 1_o here_o he_o profess_v schism_n profess_v schism_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o believe_v and_o practice_v whatsoever_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o this_o present_a age_n do_v believe_v and_o practice_v here_o if_o he_o mean_v the_o protestant_n be_v ready_a to_o believe_v and_o practice_v whatsoever_o all_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o this_o present_a age_n 3_o guard_v p._n 98_o 3_o beside_o they_o do_v believe_v and_o practice_v and_o understand_v a_o consent_n of_o this_o catholic_n church_n according_a to_o the_o former_a explication_n thereof_o which_o be_v but_o reasonable_a then_o 1_o i_o refer_v you_o to_o what_o be_v say_v in_o the_o three_o discourse_n §_o 26_o whether_o for_o the_o most_o of_o the_o modern_a controversy_n the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n i_o mean_v the_o main_a body_n both_o of_o the_o oriental_a and_o occidental_a church_n especial_o as_o to_o the_o guide_n and_o governor_n thereof_o who_o only_o have_v authority_n of_o vote_v and_o give_v law_n in_o the_o church_n high_a consultation_n and_o to_o who_o judgement_n inferior_n in_o spiritual_a matter_n ought_v to_o conform_v at_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n do_v not_o and_o do_v not_o still_o agree_v in_o their_o opinion_n in_o many_o thing_n now_o oppose_v by_o protestant_n and_o then_o by_o luther_n and_o a_o few_o other_o who_o side_v not_o with_o or_o join_v themselves_o to_o any_o though_o lesser_a part_n of_o the_o then_o church-governor_n eastern_a or_o western_a but_o free_o acknowledge_v their_o discession_n à_fw-la toto_fw-la mundo_fw-la see_v below_o §_o 55._o n._n 4._o which_o make_v luther_n sometime_o thus_o to_o utter_v the_o objection_n of_o his_o conscience_n within_o and_o of_o the_o church_n without_o quot_fw-la medicamentis_fw-la say_v he_o privata_fw-la he_o praefat._n de_fw-fr de_fw-fr abroganda_fw-la missa_fw-la privata_fw-la quam_fw-la potentibus_fw-la &_o evidentissimis_fw-la scripture_n meam_fw-la ipsius_fw-la conscientiam_fw-la vix_fw-la dùm_fw-la stabilivi_fw-la ut_fw-la auderem_fw-la unus_fw-la contradicere_fw-la papae_fw-la &_o credere_fw-la eum_fw-la esse_fw-la antichristum_n episcopos_fw-la ejus_fw-la esse_fw-la apostolos_fw-la academias_fw-la esse_fw-la ejus_fw-la lupanaria_fw-la quoties_fw-la mihi_fw-la palpitavit_fw-la tremulum_fw-la cor_fw-la &_o reprehendens_fw-la objecit_fw-la corum_fw-la fortissimum_fw-la &_o unicum_fw-la argumentum_fw-la tu_fw-la solus_fw-la sapit_fw-la totne_v errant_a universi_fw-la and_o elsewhere_o 12._o elsewhere_o in_o galat._n 1_o 11_o 12._o ecclesia_fw-la sic_fw-la sentit_fw-la &_o credit_n impossibile_fw-it est_fw-la autem_fw-la quòd_fw-la christus_fw-la tot_fw-la saesulis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la svam_fw-la errare_fw-la sinat_fw-la tu_fw-la certè_fw-la solus_fw-la non_fw-la sapit_fw-la plus_fw-la quam_fw-la tot_fw-la sancti_fw-la viri_fw-la &_o tota_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la and_o sanctissimae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la amamus_fw-la illaesam_fw-la ea_fw-la tot_fw-la saeculis_fw-la sic_fw-la sentit_fw-la &_o docuit_fw-la sic_fw-la senserunt_fw-la &_o docuerunt_fw-la omnes_fw-la primitivae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la dectores_fw-la viri_fw-la sanctissimi_fw-la multo_fw-la majores_fw-la &_o dectiores_fw-la te_fw-la quis_fw-la tu_fw-la es_fw-la qui_fw-la ansis_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la his_fw-la dissentire_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la diversum_fw-la dogma_fw-la obtrudere_fw-la to_o which_o the_o sum_n of_o the_o answer_n he_o give_v i_o pray_v you_o see_v the_o place_n be_v neque_fw-la mihi_fw-la neque_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la neque_fw-la patribus_fw-la neque_fw-la apostolis_n neque_fw-la angelo_n è_fw-la coelo_fw-la credendum_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la quid_fw-la contra_fw-la dei_fw-la verbum_fw-la docemus_fw-la and_o cuique_fw-la igitur_fw-la videat_fw-la ut_fw-la certissimus_fw-la sit_fw-la de_fw-la suâ_fw-la vocatione_n &_o doctrina_fw-la as_o for_o those_o answer_v *_o of_o dr._n field_n 880._o field_n p._n 82._o 880._o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o luther_n and_o the_o protestant_n oppose_v be_v not_o the_o general_o receive_v doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n but_o only_o of_o a_o prevalent_a faction_n in_o it_o or_o *_o of_o mr_n stillingfleet_n ‖_o that_o if_o they_o be_v doctrine_n general_o receive_v 368._o p._n 368._o yet_o they_o be_v not_o catholic_n doctrine_n but_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o opinion_n i_o say_v such_o answer_n be_v not_o then_o think_v on_o or_o not_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v make_v use_n of_o for_o what_o ground_n be_v there_o to_o call_v all_o those_o church-governor_n of_o the_o present_a age_n that_o have_v power_n to_o vote_n in_o council_n and_o steer_v the_o church_n only_o a_o prevalent_a faction_n in_o it_o or_o to_o say_v those_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n which_o none_o can_v then_o oppose_v without_o incur_v the_o church_n censure_n for_o so_o luther_n and_o other_o do_v before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v only_o general_o receive_v in_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o opinion_n 2_o but_o next_o if_o all_o the_o point_n that_o be_v pretend_v be_v not_o find_v to_o have_v be_v general_o believe_v or_o practise_v in_o the_o church-catholick_n at_o luther_n appearance_n yet_o if_o two_o or_o three_o of_o they_o appear_v to_o be_v so_o according_a to_o the_o bishop_n concession_n here_o to_o so_o many_o will_v the_o protestant_n stand_v oblige_v in_o a_o conformity_n of_o their_o belief_n and_o practice_n nor_o can_v they_o excuse_v their_o dissent_n from_o these_o because_o a_o dissent_n in_o more_o than_o these_o be_v false_o lay_v to_o their_o charge_n but_o 3_o if_o at_o lest_o what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n and_o missal_n to_o which_o all_o be_v oblige_v to_o conform_v both_o of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o universal_a belief_n and_o practice_n protestant_n by_o this_o profession_n be_v bind_v herein_o at_o least_o to_o believe_v and_o practice_n with_o the_o rest_n and_o why_o then_o do_v they_o compose_v new_a liturgy_n why_o absent_a themselves_o from_o the_o old_a be_v it_o not_o that_o these_o contain_v something_o in_o they_o to_o which_o they_o can_v thus_o conform_v 4._o last_o for_o point_v no_o way_n enjoin_v yet_o if_o such_o either_o speculative_a or_o practical_a do_v appear_v so_o far_o as_o our_o examination_n can_v discover_v to_o we_o not_o only_o to_o be_v tolerate_v but_o justify_v and_o maintain_v either_o by_o the_o whole_a or_o a_o much_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n unite_v with_o the_o prime_a apostolic_a chair_n it_o seem_v here_o necessary_a that_o no_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n do_v decretal_o censure_v any_o such_o point_n as_o error_n in_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n or_o do_v any_o way_n oblige_v their_o inferior_n to_o think_v or_o profess_v they_o to_o be_v so_o which_o this_o much_o major_a part_n allow_v and_o practise_v if_o liberty_n to_o think_v teach_v or_o practice_n otherwise_o according_a to_o their_o opinion_n in_o a_o point_n yet_o no_o way_n define_v or_o enjoin_v may_v be_v grant_v to_o such_o a_o minor_a part_n yet_o not_o a_o liberty_n to_o define_v against_o it_o or_o pronounce_v it_o a_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o this_o can_v be_v do_v without_o such_o minor_a condemn_v the_o much_o major_a part_n join_v with_o the_o prime_a patriarch_n which_o small_a part_n be_v condemn_v both_o the_o superior_a and_o much_o great_a if_o it_o be_v allow_v destroy_v church-government_n 2._o after_o this_o first_o submission_n 3._o §._o 36._o n._n 3._o wherein_o the_o bishop_n seem_v to_o engage_v the_o protestant_n belief_n general_n 2._o *_o of_o council_n general_n and_o practice_n to_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v general_o believe_v and_o practise_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n though_o it_o be_v not_o also_o conciliar_o define_v if_o next_o we_o come_v to_o the_o church_n council_n here_o also_o he_o make_v fair_a promise_n of_o submission_n i_o mean_v as_o to_o external_a obedience_n and_o noncontradiction_n and_o 1_o in_o respect_n of_o a_o council_n general_n he_o be_v not_o in_o every_o thing_n so_o nice_a or_o exception_n as_o some_o other_o protestant_n be_v he_o 1_o not_o exact_v that_o this_o council_n shall_v be_v so_o absolute_o general_a as_o that_o any_o heretic_n shall_v be_v admit_v such_o as_o true_a general_n council_n have_v evident_o declare_v to_o be_v heretic_n or_o such_o as_o will_v not_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o all_o old_a heresy_n 352._o heresy_n schism_n guard_v p._n 352._o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v all_o which_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o heresy_n by_o undoubted_a general_n council_n 2_o nor_o that_o all_o the_o five_o proto-patriarch_n shall_v be_v present_a there_o four_o of_o they_o and_o their_o clergy_n be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o turk_n but_o grant_v it_o sufficient_a if_o the_o sense_n and_o suffrage_n of_o they_o and_o their_o church_n be_v deliver_v by_o messenger_n or_o letter_n 3._o as_o for_o the_o call_n also_o of_o this_o council_n consider_v the_o division_n and_o sub-division_n of_o the_o ancient_a empire_n and_o the_o present_a distraction_n of_o christendom_n i._n e._n as_o to_o the_o prince_n thereof_o their_o altogether_o contrary_a
church-governor_n in_o it_o who_o judgement_n can_v be_v have_v to_o be_v sufficient_a though_o some_o lesser_a party_n continue_v to_o contradict_v i_o think_v several_a controversy_n that_o be_v yet_o agitate_a will_v appear_v former_o decide_v and_o the_o church_n peace_n not_o so_o difficult_a to_o be_v settle_v for_o in_o the_o church_n catholic_n within_o this_o last_o thousand_o year_n have_v be_v assemble_v many_o council_n so_o general_a as_o the_o time_n permit_v and_o as_o the_o caller_n thereof_o can_v procure_v and_o these_o her_o council_n have_v make_v many_o definition_n contrary_a to_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n and_o yet_o she_o have_v not_o hitherto_o though_o importune_v by_o several_a pretend_v demonstrator_n of_o the_o contrary_a to_o these_o definition_n assemble_v herself_o in_o any_o other_o synod_n equal_a to_o the_o former_a to_o recall_v such_o council_n or_o their_o act_n such_o a_o tacit_n admission_n be_v all_o that_o the_o archbishop_n require_v 327._o require_v see_v before_o §._o 327._o nay_o when_o late_a council_n have_v be_v call_v from_o time_n to_o time_n yet_o in_o these_o she_o have_v alter_v nothing_o concern_v those_o definition_n in_o the_o former_a nay_o a_o much_o major_a part_n at_o least_o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n have_v also_o out_o of_o council_n in_o their_o public_a write_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n not_o only_o not_o contradict_v but_o own_v the_o legality_n of_o these_o council_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o decree_n now_o may_v we_o not_o hence_o conclude_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n ay_o mean_a who_o judgement_n we_o can_v procure_v have_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o be_v necessary_a admit_v and_o accept_v they_o and_o that_o nothing_o have_v be_v or_o be_v bring_v in_o that_o she_o take_v for_o a_o demonstration_n to_o the_o contrary_a to_o what_o she_o have_v define_v and_o here_o may_v we_o not_o conclude_v that_o according_a to_o the_o archbishops_n sense_n these_o forepast_a and_o so_o long_o unquestioned_a council_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v infallible_a or_o if_o this_o we_o may_v not_o presume_v what_o hope_n have_v we_o leave_v of_o ever_o know_v the_o church_n catholick_n mind_n her_o acceptation_n or_o non-acceptation_n of_o any_o thing_n or_o of_o enjoy_v at_o all_o as_o to_o necessary_n this_o her_o infallible_a guidance_n promise_v we_o by_o protestant_n in_o stead_n of_o that_o of_o her_o council_n we_o have_v wait_v now_o above_o 400_o year_n since_o the_o conciliar_a determination_n of_o transubstantiation_n no_o council_n equal_a to_o those_o which_o pass_v it_o have_v be_v assemble_v by_o the_o church_n catholic_n to_o retract_v it_o i_o ask_v have_v not_o the_o church_n then_o already_o sufficient_o accept_v it_o though_o some_o in_o some_o time_n have_v offer_v to_o she_o their_o seem_a demonstration_n against_o it_o in_o the_o expectation_n of_o new_a domonstration_n of_o a_o new_a assembly_n such_o as_o shall_v be_v call_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n and_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o a_o council_n more_o full_a and_o complete_a than_o any_o former_a for_o a_o thousand_o year_n have_v be_v wherein_o the_o cophtite_n melahites_n armenian_n abyssine_n russian_n &c_n &c_n be_v to_o have_v a_o part_n i_o ask_v what_o shall_v poor_a christian_n do_v for_o a_o guide_n that_o may_v secure_v they_o at_o least_o in_o fundamental_o if_o first_o the_o most_o supreme_a guide_n that_o they_o have_v and_o have_v have_v and_o such_o acceptation_n of_o their_o act_n as_o have_v be_v may_v not_o be_v secure_o rely_v on_o and_o then_o such_o a_o infallible_a guide_n as_o be_v promise_v they_o instead_o thereof_o can_v never_o be_v have_v unless_o these_o divine_n also_o will_v here_o retreat_v and_o make_v use_n of_o the_o answer_n that_o be_v mention_v before_o §_o 8._o viz._n that_o nothing_o at_o all_o that_o be_v or_o can_v come_v into_o controversy_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v decide_v §_o 39_o but_o if_o the_o past_a council_n need_v a_o acceptation_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n to_o render_v they_o infallible_a more_o than_o the_o acceptation_n that_o be_v forementioned_a what_o must_v it_o be_v 1_o must_v it_o be_v that_o of_o another_o council_n assemble_v by_o the_o church_n for_o such_o thing_n the_o archbishop_n mention_n but_o how_o shall_v we_o know_v again_o of_o this_o council_n whether_o the_o church_n catholic_n sufficient_o accept_v it_o and_o what_o if_o it_o accept_v this_o no_o more_o ample_o than_o the_o former_a or_o be_v there_o any_o such_o new_a evidence_n or_o demonstration_n now_o discoverable_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v not_o as_o liable_a to_o be_v mistake_v in_o one_o council_n as_o in_o another_o in_o a_o late_a as_o in_o a_o former_a if_o you_o say_v yes_o because_o a_o demonstration_n in_o the_o archbishops_n sense_n ‖_o be_v such_o as_o be_v propose_v to_o any_o man_n and_o understand_v the_o mind_n can_v choose_v but_o inward_o assent_v unto_o it_o i_o answer_v such_o a_o definition_n suit_v not_o with_o theological_n but_o mathematical_a demonstration_n such_o as_o this_o that_o twice_o two_o make_v four_o for_o what_o or_o how_o few_o theological_a truth_n be_v they_o that_o all_o in_o their_o right_a wit_n and_o understand_v the_o term_n immediate_o assent_v to_o when_o propose_v or_o what_o judge_n in_o these_o matter_n can_v promise_v such_o evidence_n as_o that_o none_o have_v the_o use_n of_o reason_n shall_v deny_v his_o sentence_n last_o as_o to_o one_o council_n accept_n of_o another_o where_o can_v we_o stay_v if_o we_o may_v not_o in_o the_o first_o for_o will_v not_o this_o second_o council_n be_v render_v as_o uncertain_a to_o we_o for_o its_o definition_n and_o as_o liable_a to_o appeal_n upon_o other_o new_a evidence_n and_o demonstration_n pretend_v against_o it_o as_o the_o former_a be_v for_o when_o in_o its_o definition_n against_o these_o false_a one_o that_o be_v already_o examine_v it_o corroborate_v the_o former_a yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o some_o other_o evidence_n may_v be_v produce_v against_o it_o and_o against_o the_o same_o definition_n that_o may_v be_v true_a or_o 2_o must_v it_o be_v such_o a_o acceptation_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n out_o of_o council_n that_o no_o person_n or_o at_o least_o church_n contradict_v such_o former_a council_n this_o also_o be_v unreasonable_a for_o some_o not_o only_o person_n but_o church_n and_o these_o very_a considerable_a i_o mean_v in_o comparison_n of_o some_o other_o church_n though_o not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o main_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_n profession_n may_v stand_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n by_o some_o former_a council_n and_o therefore_o do_v become_v uncapable_a of_o any_o right_n now_o either_o of_o vote_v in_o or_o accept_v of_o a_o future_a council_n i_o mean_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o that_o their_o vote_n and_o acceptation_n be_v any_o way_n necessary_a to_o the_o validity_n thereof_o or_o such_o person_n or_o church_n if_o not_o condemn_v of_o former_a heresy_n yet_o may_v be_v by_o the_o much_o great_a and_o more_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o present_a council_n for_o some_o new_a doctrine_n of_o they_o against_o the_o former_a traditive_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n either_o suspend_v from_o sit_v and_o vote_v with_o they_o or_o admit_v to_o vote_n as_o in_o a_o thing_n perhaps_o not_o so_o clear_a in_o former_a tradition_n yet_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o suffrage_n much_o inferior_a in_o this_o case_n neither_o their_o contrary_a vote_n in_o the_o council_n nor_o their_o non-acceptation_n of_o it_o afterward_o be_v of_o any_o effect_n as_o to_o the_o annul_n of_o the_o act_n of_o such_o council_n otherwise_o no_o new_a tenent_n can_v be_v condemn_v by_o the_o church_n if_o those_o who_o hold_v it_o be_v a_o considerable_a number_n will_v not_o concur_v to_o vote_n or_o to_o accept_v the_o condemnation_n thereof_o some_o arrian_n bishop_n never_o accept_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o now_o the_o socinian_o unless_o therefore_o the_o former_a acceptation_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n though_o perhaps_o deficient_a in_o some_o person_n or_o also_o church_n may_v suffice_v to_o render_v or_o declare_v the_o judgement_n of_o that_o council_n infallible_a who_o can_v be_v assure_v but_o that_o this_o nicen_n council_n err_v in_o a_o point_n fundamental_a if_o the_o deity_n of_o our_o saviour_n may_v be_v think_v such_o the_o church_n catholick'_v acknowledge_v infallibility_n in_o fundamental_o and_o her_o acceptation_n of_o council_n may_v not_o be_v obstruct_v with_o such_o unactuable_a circumstance_n as_o that_o these_o can_v never_o in_o any_o particular_a come_v to_o be_v know_v this_o for_o the_o archbishop_n §_o 40_o again_o thus_o dr._n field_n 2._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 2._o concern_v the_o present_a catholic_n church_n in_o any_o one_o age_n as_o
then_o at_o the_o time_n that_o she_o be_v not_o so_o we_o believe_v a_o falsehood_n under_o the_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n of_o this_o more_o need_v not_o be_v say_v §_o 44_o 3._o again_o if_o under_o such_o governor_n the_o visible_a church_n precede_v the_o reformation_n be_v allow_v to_o have_v be_v catholic_n and_o holy_a from_o these_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v also_o not_o to_o have_v be_v heretical_a or_o schismatical_a which_o church_n protestant_n contra-distinguish_a to_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o it_o and_o in_o which_o church_n divide_v from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n no_o salvation_n can_v be_v have_v by_o those_o who_o if_o either_o know_v or_o culpable_o ignorant_a of_o these_o sin_n of_o such_o a_o church_n do_v not_o actual_o desert_v such_o a_o communion_n for_o this_o likewise_o see_v the_o quotation_n out_o of_o the_o archbishop_n before_z §_o 367._o and_o out_o of_o dr._n field_n before_o §_o 40._o bellarmine_n say_v he_o be_v to_o be_v blame_v for_o idle_a and_o needless_a busy_v himself_o in_o prove_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n never_o fall_v into_o heresy_n which_o we_o most_o willing_o grant_v and_o l._n 1._o c._n 7._o he_o say_v that_o the_o name_n of_o catholic_n church_n distinguish_v man_n hold_v the_o faith_n in_o unity_n from_o schismatic_n who_o as_o also_o heretic_n though_o he_o there_o affirm_v to_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n of_o the_o church_n take_v more_o general_o as_o it_o distinguish_v man_n of_o the_o christian_a profession_n from_o infidel_n yet_o not_o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o full_o and_o perfect_o of_o the_o church_n with_o hope_n of_o salvation_n 13._o salvation_n l._n 1._o c._n 14._o p._n 21_o &_o c._n 7_o p._n 13._o the_o common_a prayer_n also_o use_v both_o in_o the_o roman_a and_o protestant_a church_n on_o good_a friday_n show_v the_o same_o oremus_fw-la say_v the_o one_o pro_fw-la haereticis_fw-la &_o schismaticis_fw-la ut_fw-la deus_fw-la eos_fw-la ad_fw-la sanctam_fw-la matrem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la atque_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la revocare_fw-la dignetur_fw-la have_v mercy_n lord_n say_v the_o other_o upon_o all_o jew_n turk_n infidel_n and_o heretic_n and_o so_o fetch_v they_o home_o to_o thy_o flock_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v among_o the_o remnant_n of_o the_o true_a israelite_n and_o be_v make_v one_o fold_n under_o one_o shepherd_n but_o in_o the_o trans-ferring_a these_o good_a friday_n collect_v out_o of_o the_o former_a missal_n into_o their_o new_a common-prayer-book_n it_o be_v observable_a that_o though_o the_o reform_a retain_v heretic_n yet_o they_o omit_v schismatic_n and_o 2_o lie_v change_v the_o former_a expression_n of_o revoca_fw-la ad_fw-la sanctam_fw-la matrem_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la &_o apostolicam_fw-la into_o fetch_v home_o to_o thy_o flock_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o the_o mention_n of_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o catholic_n apostolic_a church_n may_v occasion_v in_o the_o people_n some_o mistake_v see_v also_o bishop_n bramhal_n vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n c._n 2._o p._n 9_o 27_o 28_o &_o before_o §_o 34._o and_o thus_o mr._n thorndike_n in_o his_o letter_n concern_v the_o present_a state_n of_o religion_n 208._o religion_n 208._o '_o when_o we_o say_v we_o believe_v the_o catholic_n church_n as_o part_v of_o that_o faith_n whereby_o we_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v we_o do_v not_o profess_v to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o company_n of_o man_n as_o profess_v christianity_n but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o corporation_n of_o true_a christian_n exclude_v heretic_n and_o schismatic_n and_o that_o we_o hope_v to_o be_v save_v by_o this_o faith_n as_o be_v member_n of_o it_o of_o that_o corporation_n and_o this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o stile_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n signify_v as_o distinguish_v the_o body_n of_o true_a christian_n to_o wit_n so_o far_o as_o profession_n go_v from_o the_o conventicle_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n for_o this_o title_n of_o catholic_n will_v signify_v nothing_o if_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v not_o bar_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o he_o §_o 45_o in_o the_o former_a passage_n you_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o author_n forequote_v speak_v not_o of_o some_o or_o other_o in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n to_o have_v be_v catholic_n and_o consequent_o holy_a etc._n etc._n but_o of_o the_o visible_a church_n consist_v of_o the_o roll_a clergy_n and_o the_o subject_n and_o conform_v laity_n according_a to_o the_o public_a doctrine_n and_o definition_n thereof_o as_o these_o be_v not_o deficient_a in_o the_o essential_o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n either_o as_o to_o faith_n or_o holiness_n for_o such_o a_o church_n catholic_n they_o believe_v always_o to_o be_v who_o doctrine_n and_o definition_n discipline_n and_o external_a visible_a profession_n maintain_v by_o the_o governor_n thereof_o be_v catholic_n and_o if_o in_o any_o other_o sense_n we_o call_v it_o a_o catholick-church_n when_o we_o hold_v its_o governor_n and_o doctrine_n meanwhile_n heretical_a and_o schismatical_a viz._n by_o reason_n of_o some_o that_o may_v be_v find_v herein_o catholick_o persuade_v we_o may_v as_o well_o call_v that_o a_o heretical_a church_n the_o doctrine_n and_o doctor_n of_o which_o be_v catholic_n if_o perhaps_o some_o only_a in_o it_o be_v heretical_o affect_v to_o go_v on_o therefore_o dr._n field_n proceed_v also_o so_o far_o as_o to_o own_o the_o western_a church_n that_o be_v before_o luther_n §_o 46_o for_o the_o protestant_n true_a mother_n for_o indeed_o where_o can_v he_o find_v at_o that_o time_n a_o church_n any_o whit_n better_o to_o call_v mother_n and_o to_o confess_v 6._o confess_v l._n 3._o c._n 6._o '_o that_o she_o continue_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n until_o our_o time_n and_o to_o those_o say_v he_o that_o demand_n of_o we_o where_o our_o church_n be_v before_o luther_n begin_v we_o answer_v it_o be_v the_o know_v and_o apparent_a church_n in_o the_o world_n wherein_o all_o our_o father_n live_v and_o die_v wherein_o luther_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v baptize_v and_o 880._o and_o 3_o part_n p._n 880._o wherein_o a_o save_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n in_o christ_n be_v find_v in_o order_n to_o which_o he_o so_o far_o justify_v the_o public_a service_n also_o of_o those_o day_n which_o our_o father_n frequent_v even_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n itself_o as_o to_o say_v 224._o say_v append._n 3_o l._n p._n 224._o '_o that_o the_o use_v thereof_o &_o no_o other_o be_v use_v in_o those_o day_n than_o be_v now_o be_v no_o proof_n that_o the_o church_n that_o then_o be_v be_v not_o a_o protestant_a church_n and_o that_o both_o the_o liturgy_n itself_o and_o the_o profession_n of_o such_o as_o use_v it_o show_v plain_o that_o the_o church_n that_o then_o be_v never_o allow_v any_o romish_a error_n and_o again_o so_o far_o justify_v he_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n which_o he_o own_v as_o catholic_n and_o the_o protestant_n mother_n as_o to_o affirm_v 81._o affirm_v 3_o l._n p._n 81._o that_o none_o of_o those_o point_n of_o false_a doctrine_n and_o error_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n now_o maintain_v and_o the_o protestant_n condemn_v be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o church_n before_o luther_n constant_o deliver_v he_o must_v mean_v constant_o for_o the_o present_a age_n before_o luther_n for_o in_o that_o age_n he_o acknowledge_v it_o catholic_n or_o general_o receive_v by_o all_o they_o that_o be_v of_o it_o but_o doubtful_o broach_v and_o devise_v without_o all_o certain_a resolution_n or_o factious_o defend_v by_o some_o certain_a only_a etc._n etc._n it_o seem_v therefore_o that_o look_v how_o many_o doctrine_n of_o those_o now_o condemn_v by_o protestant_n may_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n 1._o §._o 47._o n._n 1._o i_o say_v not_o here_o the_o catholic_n but_o the_o latin_a church_n for_o of_o this_o he_o speak_v before_o luther_n not_o doubtful_o broach_v but_o in_o her_o council_n resolve_v in_o her_o public_a liturgy_n conform_v to_o and_o general_o receive_v general_o not_o as_o include_v every_o single_a person_n for_o so_o perhaps_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n or_o of_o christ_n incarnation_n receive_v but_o so_o general_o receive_v by_o the_o then_o western_a church-governor_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o ratification_n of_o the_o decree_n of_o their_o representative_n meet_v in_o council_n for_o more_o than_o this_o can_v rational_o be_v require_v so_o many_o he_o will_v acknowledge_v for_o catholic_n and_o in_o obedience_n thereto_o show_v a_o filial_a duty_n to_o this_o his_o mother_n and_o therefore_o after_o this_o to_o defend_v the_o discession_n of_o the_o reform_a from_o and_o their_o present_a non-communion_n with_o the_o present_a western_a church_n he_o seek_v to_o relieve_v
himself_o in_o say_v 224._o say_v apol._n 3_o par_fw-fr p._n 880._o &_o append_v 3_o l._n p._n 187_o 224._o that_o this_o roman_a church_n be_v not_o the_o same_o now_o as_o it_o be_v when_o luther_n begin_v nor_o the_o external_a face_n of_o religion_n then_o the_o now_o profess_a roman_a religion_n and_o further_o 880._o further_o p._n 880._o that_o the_o error_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v fundamental_a where_o it_o be_v observable_a 1_o that_o the_o discession_n of_o protestant_n in_o luther_n time_n or_o of_o luther_n himself_o from_o that_o church_n which_o be_v not_o the_o same_o as_o he_o say_v then_o as_o now_o nor_o the_o error_n which_o protestant_n now_o condemn_v than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o but_o of_o a_o faction_n in_o it_o remain_v by_o this_o still_o culpable_a for_o none_o may_v desert_v the_o communion_n of_o a_o church_n because_o of_o the_o corrupt_a doctrine_n or_o practice_n of_o a_o faction_n in_o it_o but_o if_o he_o make_v the_o clergy_n and_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n of_o such_o church_n impose_v such_o doctrine_n and_o require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n to_o be_v that_o faction_n than_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o faction_n to_o be_v charge_v on_o the_o very_a church_n itself_o and_o not_o on_o a_o party_n in_o it_o as_o a_o church_n all_o the_o roll_a clergy_n of_o which_o hold_v and_o impose_v arrianism_n be_v right_o style_v a_o arrian_n church_n if_o any_o can_v be_v so_o but_o this_o expression_n dr._n field_n see_v he_o have_v reason_n to_o forbear_v 2._o §._o 47._o n._n 2._o and_n therefore_o bishop_n bramhall_n 263._o bramhall_n reply_v to_o chalced._n p._n 263._o think_v fit_a to_o take_v another_o course_n and_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o this_o first_o discession_n of_o protestant_n which_o discession_n the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n urge_v to_o have_v precede_v those_o grievance_n and_o impediment_n of_o communion_n that_o protestant_n of_o late_a time_n chief_o complain_v of_o namely_o the_o many_o new_a definition_n and_o anathema_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o new_a article_n and_o creed_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o seem_v to_o make_v a_o contrary_a plea_n to_o dr._n field_n for_o those_o very_a point_n say_v he_o which_o pius_n the_o four_o comprehend_v in_o a_o new_a symbol_n or_o creed_n be_v obtrude_v upon_o we_o before_o by_o his_o predecessor_n be_v therefore_o before_o the_o ratification_n or_o oblige_v authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n as_o necessary_a article_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o require_v as_o necessary_a article_n of_o their_o communion_n so_o as_o we_o must_v either_o receive_v these_o or_o utter_o lose_v they_o this_o be_v the_o only_a difference_n that_o pius_n the_o four_o deal_v in_o gross_a his_o predecessor_n by_o retail_n they_o fashion_v the_o several_a rod_n and_o he_o bind_v they_o up_o into_o a_o bundle_n but_o if_o the_o bishop_n understand_v this_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o sit_v under_o the_o predecessor_n of_o pius_n the_o query_n still_o remain_v concern_v the_o lawful_a ground_n of_o the_o first_o protestant_n discession_n from_o the_o former_a church_n which_o discession_n precede_v the_o beginning_n of_o that_o council_n above_o twenty_o year_n 3._o §._o 47._o n._n 3._o 2_o lie_v it_o be_v observable_a that_o the_o discession_n make_v since_o from_o the_o former_a public_a service_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n affirm_v by_o dr._n field_n to_o contain_v in_o it_o no_o romish_a error_n must_v be_v also_o culpable_a in_o which_o nothing_o since_o luther_n time_n have_v be_v alter_v 3_o that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n in_o be_v say_v by_o he_o since_o that_o time_n to_o err_v in_o fundamental_o be_v hereby_o cease_v to_o be_v any_o part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o further_o no_o salvation_n to_o be_v have_v in_o she_o at_o all_o even_o to_o the_o invincible_o ignorant_a if_o dr._n field_n hold_v no_o truth_n to_o be_v fundamental_a to_o salvation_n but_o such_o without_o which_o salvation_n can_v possible_o be_v have_v concern_v which_o see_v what_o he_o say_v 3_o l._n 4_o c._n p._n 79._o chap._n vii_o v._o that_o according_a to_o the_o former_a concession_n make_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n §_o 41._o there_o seem_v to_o be_v *_o a_o great_a security_n to_o those_o continue_n in_o the_o ancient_a communion_n §_o 48._o as_o to_o avoid_v heresy_n or_o schism_n ib._n as_o to_o other_o grosser_n error_n §_o 51._o and_o *_o danger_n to_o those_o desert_v it_o §_o 54._o where_o be_v draw_v up_o in_o brief_a the_o protestant_n defence_n for_o such_o discession_n §_o 55._o n._n 1._o and_o the_o catholick_n remonstrance_n §_o 55._o n._n 9_o §_o 48_o now_o to_o reflect_v on_o the_o former_a discourse_n as_o to_o the_o two_o principal_a concession_n make_v by_o protestant_n therein_o the_o 1_o their_o concede_v the_o catholickness_n communion_n the_o security_n that_o hence_o seem_v to_o be_v to_o those_o continue_n in_o the_o ancient_a communion_n and_o indeficiency_n of_o the_o former_a western_a church_n as_o to_o all_o necessary_n before_o and_o at_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n etc._n luther_n §._o 41_o etc._n etc._n the_o 2d._o their_o concede_v the_o general_a council_n of_o the_o church_n in_o any_o age_n to_o be_v unerrable_a in_o necessary_n when_o they_o be_v universal_o accept_v by_o the_o church_n catholic_n diffusive_a etc._n diffusive_a §._o 32_o etc._n etc._n from_o the_o first_o of_o these_o the_o catholickness_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n before_o luther_n in_o necessary_n schism_n as_o to_o heresy_n or_o schism_n be_v grant_v methinks_v appear_v a_o great_a secnrity_n for_o their_o salvation_n as_o to_o their_o faith_n who_o be_v not_o deficient_a in_o a_o holy_a life_n to_o all_o those_o who_o persevere_v to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o present_a roman_a and_o other_o western_a church_n unreformed_a and_o then_o the_o like_a hazard_n to_o those_o who_o relinquish_v that_o communion_n for_o 1_o i_o think_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o none_o who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n i_o mean_v that_o declare_v in_o her_o council_n and_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o western_a or_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v before_o luther_n appearance_n can_v endanger_v his_o salvation_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o incur_v either_o heresy_n or_o schism_n because_o then_o the_o western_a or_o roman_a church_n before_o luther_n must_v be_v hold_v heretical_a or_o schismatical_a and_o so_o non-catholick_n for_o these_o two_o heretical_a and_o catholic_n be_v contra-distinct_a see_v the_o archbishop_n §_o 21._o n._n 5._o p._n 141._o and_o what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 44._o and_o then_o see_v there_o be_v a_o holy_a catholic_n church_n some_o where_o or_o other_o in_o that_o immediate_o before_o luther_n as_o in_o every_o age_n which_o and_o where_o be_v it_o the_o eastern_a church_n use_v muchwhat_a the_o same_o public_a liturgy_n and_o be_v guilty_a of_o as_o gross_a error_n and_o practice_n and_o also_o they_o exclude_v nonconformist_n from_o their_o communion_n §_o 49_o add_v to_o this_o mr._n stillingfleet_n position_n 58._o position_n rat._n account_n p._n 58._o that_o if_o we_o inquire_v what_o be_v positive_o believe_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o the_o catholic_n church_n we_o shall_v hardly_o find_v any_o better_a way_n than_o by_o the_o article_n of_o the_o ancient_a creed_n and_o the_o universal_a opposition_n of_o any_o new_a doctrine_n on_o its_o first_o appear_v and_o the_o condemn_v the_o broacher_n of_o it_o for_o heresy_n in_o ecumenical_a council_n with_o the_o continual_a disapprobation_n of_o those_o doctrine_n by_o the_o christian_a church_n of_o all_o age_n as_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o case_n of_o arrius_n and_o pelagius_n for_o it_o seem_v very_o reasonable_a say_v he_o to_o judge_v that_o since_o the_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v all_o deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n since_o the_o foundation_n of_o that_o church_n lie_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v deliver_v contrary_a to_o any_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o church_n by_o some_o evident_a act_n must_v declare_v its_o dislike_n of_o it_o and_o its_o resolution_n thereby_o to_o adhere_v to_o that_o necessary_a doctrine_n which_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n thus_o he_o from_o which_o thought_n so_o reasonable_a be_v gather_v the_o security_n in_o adhere_v to_o those_o tenant_n receive_v in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n which_o protestant_n now_o oppose_v as_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o any_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n because_o protestant_n can_v show_v to_o repeat_v here_o the_o former_a word_n the_o broacher_n of_o these_o tenant_n suppose_v of_o a_o substantial_a conversion_n in_o the_o eucharist_n saint-invocation_n veneration_n of_o image_n a_o purgatory_n of_o soul_n after_o this_o life_n monastic_a vow_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n condemn_v for_o heresy_n in_o ecumenical_a council_n or_o a_o continual_a disapprobation_n of_o those_o doctrine_n by_o the_o christian_a church_n of_o
all_o age_n as_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o case_n of_o arrius_n and_o pelagius_n or_o the_o church_n by_o any_o evident_a act_n declare_v her_o dislike_n of_o they_o as_o may_v on_o the_o other_o side_n be_v show_v many_o evident_a act_n of_o her_o approbation_n of_o they_o and_o 2_o if_o no_o danger_n of_o perish_v for_o heresy_n or_o schism_n to_o those_o live_n and_o die_v in_o this_o communion_n before_o 1._o §._o 50._o n._n 1._o then_o neither_o to_o any_o since_o luther_n time_n for_o if_o since_o these_o time_n this_o communion_n be_v become_v heretical_a or_o schismatical_a i_o demand_v in_o respect_n of_o what_o council_n or_o what_o definition_n make_v since_o luther_n day_n which_o it_o oppose_v be_v it_o become_v heretical_a or_o in_o respect_n of_o what_o church_n in_o desert_v or_o depart_v from_o its_o communion_n schismatical_a or_o in_o the_o protestant_n notion_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n in_o respect_n of_o what_o new_a tenent_n or_o practise_v against_o some_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n since_o luther_n time_n be_v it_o become_v heretical_a when_o guilty_a of_o none_o such_o before_o and_o in_o its_o require_v of_o conformity_n to_o what_o new_a point_n of_o faith_n since_o luther_n time_n be_v it_o become_v schismatical_a so_o that_o one_o that_o can_v lawful_o yield_v obedience_n to_o all_o those_o require_v before_o luther_n appearance_n yet_o can_v to_o all_o the_o present_a or_o so_o that_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n may_v lawful_o require_v without_o hazard_n of_o schism_n conformity_n to_o its_o whole_a faith_n then_o and_o not_o so_o the_o present_a church_n to_o the_o whole_a present_a faith_n for_o i_o hope_v none_o here_o will_v have_v the_o face_n to_o deny_v conformity_n require_v by_o the_o western_a church_n before_o luther_n come_n to_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a of_o those_o point_n wherein_o protestant_n now_o refuse_v it_o see_v those_o mention_v disc_n 3._o §_o 26._o and_o you_o may_v observe_v 2._o §._o 50._o n._n 2._o that_o the_o most_o or_o chief_a of_o the_o protestant_a controversy_n define_v or_o make_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v make_v so_o by_o former_a council_n of_o equal_a obligation_n or_o also_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n as_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n declare_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n canon_n of_o scripture_n purgatory_n seven_o sacrament_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n auricular_a confession_n transubstantiation_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n the_o lateran_n and_o five_o other_o before_o it_o whereinis_fw-la berengarius_fw-la his_o doctrine_n be_v condemn_v veneration_n of_o image_n in_o the_o 2_o nicene_n council_n monastic_a vow_n and_o celibacy_n of_o the_o clergy_n sufficient_o authorize_v in_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n and_o to_o these_o i_o may_v add_v the_o council_n of_o frankfort_n if_o the_o capitulare_fw-la caroli_n which_o indeed_o be_v write_v before_o may_v be_v take_v to_o deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o council_n *_o for_o adoration_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o council_n apply_v the_o psalmist_n adorate_fw-la scabellum_fw-la thereto_o as_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o s._n ambrose_n 24_o ambrose_n ibid._n 4.15_o l._n 3._o c._n 24_o and_o s._n austin_n 12._o austin_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 12._o and_o for_o veneration_n of_o the_o cross_n 17_o cross_n capitulare_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 5._o c._n 27._o l._n 4._o c._n 17_o and_o of_o relic_n ‖_o only_a the_o adoration_n of_o image_n allow_v by_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n indeed_o be_v condemn_v but_o this_o upon_o a_o mistake_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o that_o council_n as_o be_v confess_v by_o dr._n hammond_n treatise_n of_o idolatry_n §_o 57_o and_o by_o mr_n thornd●ke_v epilogue_n l._n 3._o p._n 363._o and_o as_o any_o one_o may_v easy_o discern_v if_o he_o will_v view_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o this_o capitulare_fw-la what_o opinion_n be_v impute_v by_o the_o father_n of_o franckfort_n to_o those_o of_o nice_a beside_o these_o council_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o several_a other_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o public_a liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n unaltered_a protestant_n be_v judge_n for_o many_o age_n precede_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n now_o the_o church_n oblige_v her_o subject_n to_o believe_v all_o those_o thing_n lawful_a which_o in_o her_o liturgy_n she_o oblige_v they_o to_o practice_n and_o why_o be_v there_o make_v a_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n for_o these_o point_n before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n if_o the_o church_n before_o have_v not_o make_v they_o de_fw-fr fide_fw-la or_o require_v obedience_n and_o conformity_n to_o they_o or_o if_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n or_o pius_n the_o four_o be_v first_o faulty_a herein_o 47._o herein_o see_v bishop_n bramhal_n concession_n before_o §._o 47._o suppose_v then_o a_o belief_n of_o some_o more_o point_n be_v since_o add_v yet_o i_o ask_v will_v the_o decree_a or_o impose_v of_o these_o infer_v upon_o the_o present_a church_n the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n and_o not_o the_o like_a decree_a or_o impose_v the_o former_a infer_v the_o same_o guilt_n upon_o the_o former_a church_n that_o precede_a luther_n now_o from_o this_o identity_n in_o faith_n and_o practice_n in_o the_o present_a church_n with_o that_o precede_a luther_n except_v if_o our_o gratitude_n may_v be_v allow_v to_o speak_v the_o truth_n that_o the_o council_n hold_v since_o luther_n time_n have_v reform_v several_a practice_n in_o some_o person_n of_o it_o which_o be_v before_o just_o blame_v it_o seem_v clear_a that_o whoso_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o present_a western_a or_o roman_a church_n be_v secure_a that_o he_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n for_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o what_o be_v the_o church_n catholic_n 150_o year_n ago_o shall_v mere_o by_o the_o difference_n and_o decurrence_n of_o time_n become_v non-catholick_n now_o if_o this_o be_v deny_v that_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n be_v the_o fame_n for_o its_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n with_o that_o church_n which_o be_v at_o luther_n appear_v let_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o contention_n be_v place_v here_o and_o let_v search_v only_o be_v make_v concern_v this_o not_o to_o ask_v meanwhile_n why_o luther_n reform_v then_o why_o exclaim_v so_o vehement_o on_o the_o babylonish_n captivity_n and_o sound_v a_o exite_fw-la de_fw-fr illâ_fw-la populus_fw-la meus_fw-la if_o the_o deformation_n of_o this_o church_n it_o be_v non-holinesse_n it_o be_v non-catholicknesse_a be_v since_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o so_o not_o till_o after_o his_o time_n 3_o as_o i_o think_v here_o be_v show_v no_o danger_n of_o perish_v in_o the_o present_a external_a communion_n of_o these_o church_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o heresy_n or_o schism_n 51._o schism_n §._o 51._o so_o neither_o be_v there_o error_n as_o to_o other_o gross_a error_n on_o the_o account_n of_o any_o gross_a or_o grievous_a error_n for_o 1_o how_o be_v they_o grievous_a error_n that_o be_v not_o against_o any_o necassary_n point_v of_o faith_n but_o if_o they_o be_v such_o with_o protestant_n be_v heresy_n for_o example_n to_o name_v some_o chief_a one_o how_o be_v adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o invocation_n of_o saint_n grievous_a error_n if_o also_o they_o be_v not_o against_o any_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n viz._n this_o that_o divine_a worship_n and_o divine_a supplication_n which_o they_o say_v be_v present_v to_o saint_n may_v be_v give_v only_o to_o god_n but_o they_o they_o be_v heresy_n or_o what_o so_o grievous_a error_n in_o the_o present_a communion_n that_o be_v not_o it_o or_o as_o bad_a in_o the_o same_o communion_n before_o luther_n time_n when_o yet_o christian_n in_o this_o communion_n be_v secure_a because_o it_o be_v then_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o catholic_n be_v always_o holy_a may_v err_v indeed_o in_o superstruction_n and_o deduction_n and_o other_o by_o and_o unnecessary_a truth_n from_o curiosity_n etc._n etc._n but_o can_v err_v from_o the_o foundation_n say_v the_o archbishop_n i_o add_v 141._o add_v §._o 21._o p._n 141._o as_o of_o faith_n so_o also_o of_o good_a manner_n these_o error_n then_o which_o be_v now_o charge_v to_o render_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n guilty_a of_o
a_o manifold_a idolatry_n in_o her_o worship_v the_o eucharistical_a bread_n the_o relic_n and_o image_n of_o saint_n and_o make_v prayer_n to_o they_o be_v they_o not_o the_o same_o in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n and_o the_o same_o their_o effect_n or_o if_o the_o same_o error_n then_o light_n be_v now_o become_v grievous_a upon_o what_o account_n be_v it_o upon_o a_o more_o evident_a conviction_n christian_n may_v have_v now_o than_o heretofore_o that_o such_o be_v error_n but_o what_o ground_n can_v we_o have_v to_o say_v that_o they_o now_o culpable_o and_o convincible_o err_v in_o these_o who_o no_o more_o than_o those_o before_o luther_n can_v be_v accuse_v for_o hold_v any_o error_n save_o such_o as_o be_v the_o public_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n now_o authorize_v as_o much_o as_o that_o before_o luther_n and_o who_o to_o preserve_v themselves_o from_o err_v make_v use_n of_o the_o secure_a way_n that_o reason_n can_v imagine_v or_o that_o christian_n be_v prescribe_v whilst_o for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n controvert_v in_o such_o point_n they_o choose_v not_o to_o rely_v on_o their_o own_o judgement_n but_o on_o that_o of_o the_o supreme_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n and_o judge_n of_o divine_a truth_n that_o be_v afford_v they_o here_o on_o earth_n and_o so_o if_o they_o err_v yet_o take_v the_o wise_a course_n to_o miss_v err_v that_o religion_n or_o reason_n can_v dictate_v to_o which_o guide_v also_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o this_o former_a communion_n believe_v submission_n of_o their_o private_a judgement_n to_o be_v due_a and_o to_o be_v command_v which_o be_v a_o very_a plausible_a one_o if_o a_o error_n from_o whence_o also_o it_o follow_v that_o till_o they_o be_v convince_v of_o error_n in_o this_o one_o point_n of_o submission_n not_o to_o be_v due_a they_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o be_v convince_v in_o any_o other_o where_o it_o be_v require_v nay_o yet_o further_o to_o the_o obedience_n of_o which_o guide_n at_o least_o for_o silence_n and_o noncontradiction_n they_o be_v oblige_v even_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o learned_a protestant_n 44._o protestant_n see_v disc_n 3._o §_o 44._o wherever_o they_o can_v demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a which_o demonstration_n be_v a_o degree_n of_o conviction_n sure_o very_o few_o can_v pretend_v to_o §_o 52_o 1._o it_o be_v say_v indeed_o by_o protestant_n 5._o protestant_n stillingf_n p._n 330._o archbishop_z lawd_n §_o 21._o n._n 5._o that_o all_o particular_a church_n or_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n in_o some_o age_n or_o age_n may_v universal_o hold_v some_o tenent_n that_o be_v a_o error_n but_o then_o grant_v by_o they_o that_o any_o such_o universal_o hold_v error_n can_v never_o destroy_v the_o essence_n or_o be_v of_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o render_v it_o non_fw-fr catholic_n because_o thus_o in_o such_o age_n the_o church_n catholic_n will_v fail_v now_o from_o this_o i_o collect_v my_o security_n ni_fw-fr hold_v any_o tenant_n though_o they_o shall_v happen_v to_o be_v error_n which_o be_v universal_o hold_v in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n that_o as_o they_o destroy_v not_o the_o church_n its_o be_v still_o catholic_n so_o neither_o do_v they_o expel_v i_o from_o still_o continue_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o hence_o for_o example_n i_o be_o secure_v that_o i_o be_o no_o idolater_n if_o not_o swerve_v from_o the_o church_n doctrine_n because_o the_o church_n whilst_o catholic_n as_o she_o be_v affirm_v to_o be_v be_v not_o such_o but_o in_o join_v with_o a_o church_n that_o pretend_v to_o reform_v hold_v the_o contradictory_n of_o these_o former_a universal_a tenant_n i_o be_o not_o here_o secure_a but_o that_o some_o of_o these_o tenant_n may_v be_v such_o error_n as_o exclude_v this_o new_a church_n from_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o i_o if_o adhere_v to_o it_o from_o be_v a_o member_n thereof_o as_o the_o maintain_n by_o the_o arrian_n and_o other_o of_o some_o tenant_n contrary_a to_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o former_a church_n have_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n i_o say_v for_o any_o tenent_n i_o can_v show_v to_o have_v be_v spread_v over_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n at_o luther_n appearance_n i_o be_o secure_v by_o protestant_n that_o in_o hold_v this_o i_o be_o free_a from_o heresy_n or_o be_v render_v thereby_o extra-catholick_n but_o then_o i_o be_o not_o so_o in_o my_o enter_v into_o a_o new_a society_n that_o contradict_v this_o church_n and_o such_o tenant_n except_o in_o such_o point_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o which_o i_o be_o infallible_o certain_a 2._o again_o it_o be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n ‖_o that_o a_o separation_n may_v be_v make_v without_o schism_n §_o 52_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n some_o of_o which_o or_o all_o which_o i_o say_v 59_o see_v stillingf_n p._n 331._o chillingw_n c._n 5._o §._o 52_o 55_o 56_o 59_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n of_o some_o age_n for_o some_o point_n if_o hold_v and_o impose_v by_o they_o viz._n those_o point_n wherein_o the_o essence_n and_o union_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n consist_v not_o because_o in_o such_o the_o church_n catholic_n may_v err_v but_o can_v without_o schism_n for_o other_o point_n viz._n such_o as_o constitute_v the_o necessary_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n wherein_o she_o err_v not_o for_o so_o she_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v catholic_n now_o from_o hence_o also_o i_o gather_v that_o i_o continue_v in_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o those_o particular_a church_n can_v never_o be_v non-catholick_n or_o guilty_a in_o concur_v in_o any_o schism_n for_o my_o hold_n and_o conform_v to_o any_o of_o the_o church_n universal_a tenant_n because_o none_o such_o can_v destroy_v the_o church_n from_o be_v catholic_n still_o ‖_o but_o in_o my_o separation_n from_o all_o these_o church_n impose_v such_o tenant_n i_o be_o not_o secure_a because_o some_o of_o these_o tenant_n as_o protestant_n grant_v may_v possible_o be_v such_o as_o be_v some_o part_n of_o the_o necessary_a catholic_n faith_n and_o so_o my_o separation_n if_o make_v on_o such_o account_n be_v schism_n §_o 54_o this_o security_n than_o they_o seem_v to_o enjoy_v who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o unreformed_a it_o and_o danger_n to_o those_o desert_v it_o western_a or_o roman_a church_n before_o or_o since_o luther_n time_n they_o be_v acquit_v thereby_o from_o heresy_n and_o schism_n or_o any_o other_o error_n damnative_a to_o they_o who_o therein_o follow_v their_o spiritual_a guide_n not_o against_o conscience_n but_o the_o like_a i_o see_v not_o how_o any_o may_v promise_v to_o himself_o in_o live_v and_o die_v in_o a_o new-raised_a communion_n and_o in_o desert_v the_o former_a especial_o if_o desert_v it_o for_o any_o former_a general_a doctrine_n and_o practice_n thereof_o which_o if_o not_o enjoin_v he_o here_o leave_v to_o his_o free_a liberty_n have_v no_o reason_n for_o these_o to_o withdraw_v himself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a but_o if_o enjoin_v ought_v in_o these_o to_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o whole_a especial_o so_o many_o as_o can_v demonstrate_v against_o it_o 20._o it_o see_v 2_o disc_n §._o 20._o to_o submit_v at_o least_o so_o far_o as_o if_o not_o to_o assent_v yet_o not_o to_o contradict_v all_o which_o be_v transgress_v in_o follow_v the_o reformation_n where_o such_o a_o person_n for_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n controvert_v and_o for_o his_o deny_v conformity_n to_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v by_o the_o church_n as_o matter_n of_o faith_n either_o rely_v on_o his_o own_o judgement_n or_o in_o submit_v to_o a_o guide_n follow_v inferior_a against_o superior_a governor_n or_o synod_n or_o a_o minor_a against_o a_o much_o major_a part_n last_o follow_v those_o who_o have_v refuse_v conformity_n to_o the_o external_a communion_n even_o to_o the_o liturgy_n and_o public_a service_n of_o the_o whole_a former_a catholic_n church_n whether_o eastern_a or_o western_a and_o have_v set_v up_o a_o new_a one_o against_o they_o of_o their_o own_o which_o be_v all_o manifest_a breach_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a i_o say_v i_o see_v no_o security_n any_o can_v have_v in_o such_o a_o new_a communion_n except_v that_o which_o invincible_a ignorance_n afford_v which_o in_o such_o a_o apparent_a decession_n from_o former_a church_n and_o council_n god_n know_v how_o few_o especial_o of_o the_o learned_a that_o peruse_v the_o write_n of_o former_a time_n it_o may_v shelter_v the_o most_o moderate_a 1._o §._o 55._o n._n 1._o and_o plausible_a defence_n which_o protestant_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o particular_o which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v for_o her_o discession_n defence_n where_o a_o brief_a relation_n of_o the_o
hooker_n pref._n §._o 6._o l._n 2._o §._o 7._o and_o in_o reason_n what_o can_v any_o say_v less_o §_o 21_o 10_o from_o this_o i_o also_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o though_o such_o or_o so_o many_o 10._o prop._n 10._o as_o can_v demonstrative_o prove_v the_o contrary_a be_v hereby_o disoblige_v to_o yield_v their_o assent_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o former_a guide_n yet_o so_o many_o other_o as_o can_v do_v the_o like_a remain_v oblige_v still_o to_o follow_v and_o obey_v the_o same_o their_o former_a pastor_n and_o by_o no_o mean_n may_v join_v themselves_o in_o communion_n or_o adhere_v to_o the_o new_a demonstrator_n till_o they_o themselves_o be_v confirm_v in_o the_o like_a certainty_n by_o which_o rule_n how_o few_o will_v there_o be_v of_o the_o reform_a that_o do_v not_o still_o owe_v their_o obedience_n to_o the_o same_o church_n give_v her_o law_n still_o as_o former_o that_o be_v before_o luther_n who_o upon_o new_a evidence_n desert_v it_o where_o all_o owe_v this_o obedience_n save_v demonstrator_n of_o their_o new_a tenant_n chap._n iii_o 11._o that_o these_o church-governor_n may_v teach_v diverse_o and_o some_o of_o they_o err_v in_o necessary_n and_o fall_v into_o heresy_n §_o 22._o 12._o and_o therefore_o christian_n not_o leave_v to_o follow_v who_o of_o they_o they_o please_v but_o some_o certain_a rule_n there_o be_v to_o which_o of_o they_o in_o any_o division_n they_o ought_v to_o adhere_v that_o this_o in_o the_o universal_a church-practice_n be_v and_o rational_o can_v be_v no_o other_o than_o in_o these_o judge_n subordinate_a dissent_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o superior_a in_o those_o of_o the_o same_o order_n and_o dignity_n dissent_v to_o the_o major_a part_n §_o 23._o etc._n etc._n where_o of_o the_o major_a part_n conclude_v the_o whole_a in_o the_o ancient_a council_n §_o 25._o n._n 2._o and_o of_o the_o defection_n of_o the_o church-prelacy_a in_o the_o time_n of_o arrianism_n §_o 26._o n._n 2._o 14._o and_o that_o the_o protestant-marks_a whereby_o to_o discern_v true_a from_o false_a guide_n as_o to_o the_o quest_n here_o viz._n to_o learn_v from_o these_o true_a guide_n in_o matter_n controvert_v which_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n be_v unserviceable_a §_o 28._o §_o 22_o 11_o that_o some_o of_o these_o church-governor_n more_o or_o few_o may_v become_v heretic_n and_o erroneous_a in_o point_n necessary_a and_o may_v guide_v christian_n contrary_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o 11._o prop._n 11._o be_v grant_v by_o all_o side_n and_o know_v by_o experience_n §_o 23_o 12_o it_o seem_v therefore_o also_o evident_a that_o christian_n for_o yield_v the_o obedience_n forename_a propos_fw-fr 9th_o and_o allow_v by_o protestant_n in_o such_o dissent_v of_o governor_n 12._o prop._n 12._o may_v not_o safe_o follow_v which_o of_o they_o they_o please_v or_o judge_v to_o be_v in_o their_o doctrine_n the_o right_a for_o so_o they_o judge_v of_o their_o judge_n and_o may_v as_o well_o judge_v the_o controversy_n but_o that_o some_o rule_n there_o be_v to_o who_o in_o such_o case_n they_o be_v to_o adhere_v who_o to_o relinquish_v it_o be_v as_o necessary_a for_o the_o same_o divine_a providence_n to_o leave_v some_o mean_n by_o which_o to_o know_v our_o guide_n as_o to_o give_v we_o one_o and_o this_o rule_n also_o by_o tradition_n have_v be_v and_o in_o reason_n can_v be_v no_o other_o but_o that_o in_o judge_n ecclesiastical_a subordinate_a whether_o person_n or_o council_n dissent_v man_n ought_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o superior_a in_o judge_n equal_a dissent_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o major_n not_o minor_a part_n for_o example_n in_o england_n a_o synod_n diocesan_n and_o one_o compound_v of_o both_o the_o province_n dissent_v here_o obedience_n be_v due_a to_o the_o provincial_a synod_n or_o convocation_n and_o in_o the_o provincial_a synod_n again_o a_o minor_a part_n dissent_v due_a to_o the_o major_a otherwise_o any_o may_v hold_v what_o doctrine_n like_v he_o best_o and_o oppose_v the_o maintainer_n of_o the_o contrary_a since_o ordinary_o some_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n either_o inferior_a or_o superior_a if_o not_o a_o great_a yet_o some_o small_a part_n or_o other_o of_o they_o may_v be_v find_v also_o to_o hold_v it_o and_o thus_o the_o unity_n of_o this_o catholic_n church_n as_o to_o doctrine_n be_v quite_o overthrow_v one_a in_o person_n 1._o §._o 24._o n._n 1._o or_o council_n subordinate_a that_o the_o superior_a in_o case_n of_o any_o dissent_n right_o challenge_v our_o obedience_n i_o think_v it_o out_o of_o dispute_n so_o in_o england_n for_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o supreme_a national_a synod_n and_o the_o obedience_n thereto_o in_o respect_n of_o all_o inferior_n for_o prevent_v dissension_n see_v the_o decree_n in_o can._n 139._o &_o 140._o of_o the_o synod_n under_o k._n james_n 1603._o where_o it_o be_v say_v whosoever_o shall_v affirm_v that_o the_o sacred_a synod_n of_o this_o nation_n be_v not_o the_o true_a church_n of_o england_n by_o representation_n or_o shall_v affirm_v that_o no_o manner_n of_o person_n either_o of_o the_o clergy_n or_o laity_n not_o be_v themselves_o particular_o assemble_v in_o the_o say_v sacred_a synod_n be_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o decree_n thereof_o in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a as_o not_o have_v give_v their_o voice_n unto_o those_o decree_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o not_o restore_v until_o he_o repent_v and_o public_o revoke_v that_o his_o wicked_a error_n and_o for_o obedience_n to_o this_o high_a ecclesiastical_a court_n see_v the_o king_n be_v resolute_a speech_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n 72._o hampton-court_n p._n 72._o i_o will_v have_v one_o doctrine_n and_o one_o discipline_n one_o religion_n in_o substance_n and_o ceremony_n and_o therefore_o i_o charge_v you_o never_o to_o speak_v more_o to_o that_o point_n how_o far_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v when_o the_o church_n have_v ordain_v it_o what_o subjection_n then_o for_o preserve_a unity_n be_v require_v in_o the_o english_a church_n can_v reasonable_o be_v disallow_v by_o they_o in_o the_o catholic_n again_o see_v in_o dr._n hammond_n book_n of_o schism_n 3._o schism_n c._n 3._o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o primitive_a subordination_n as_o of_o a_o presbyter_n to_o the_o bishop_n so_o of_o bishop_n to_o metropolitan_o of_o metropolitan_n to_o primate_fw-la or_o patriarch_n where_o he_o come_v short_a but_o one_o link_n of_o those_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n maintain_v viz._n of_o the_o patriarch_n to_o the_o protopatriarch_n or_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o again_o see_v his_o acknowledgement_n 29._o acknowledgement_n schism_n c_o 8._o p_o 158._o ans_fw-fr to_o cath._n gentl._n p._n 29._o of_o a_o subordination_n of_o all_o these_o sever_a person_n to_o the_o whole_a corporation_n or_o body_n of_o they_o assemble_v in_o council_n in_o which_o council_n he_o say_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o power_n which_o several_o belong_v to_o each_o bishop_n 10._o answ_n to_o cath._n gentl._n p._n 29._o §._o 9_o 10._o be_v there_o unite_a i_o add_v and_o therefore_o if_o that_o power_n which_o they_o have_v several_o be_v by_o divine_a right_n so_o be_v this_o which_o they_o have_v conjunct_o notwithstanding_o what_o be_v dispute_v against_o it_o etc._n it_o see_v still_o rat_n account_n 3_o par_fw-fr c._n 1._o p._n 515._o etc._n etc._n as_o a_o subordination_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n in_o a_o province_n to_o a_o council_n provincial_n in_o a_o nation_n to_o a_o council_n national_a of_o all_o christianity_n to_o a_o council_n general_n only_o here_o he_o omit_v one_o subordination_n well_o know_v in_o the_o church_n and_o sufficient_o attest_v by_o other_o protestant_n viz._n a_o subordination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o several_a nation_n that_o be_v under_o one_o patriarch_n to_o a_o council_n patriarchal_a which_o defect_n of_o his_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o supply_v to_o you_o out_o of_o dr._n field_n and_o bishop_n bramhall_n authority_n as_o authentic_a as_o he_o thus_o then_o dr._n field_n 518._o field_n of_o the_o ch._n p._n 518._o these_o patriarch_n may_v convocate_v the_o metropolitan_o of_o their_o several_a division_n and_o hold_v a_o patriarchal_a council_n which_o be_v of_o great_a authority_n then_o either_o those_o in_o the_o several_a province_n or_o of_o a_o whole_a nation_n former_o mention_v because_o it_o consist_v of_o more_o and_o more_o honourable_a bishop_n yet_o have_v the_o patriarch_n no_o great_a authority_n over_o the_o metropolitan_o within_o their_o large_a circuit_n than_o the_o metropolitan_o within_o their_o lesser_a compass_n and_o ib._n 513._o show_v against_o bellarmine_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o several_a subordination_n of_o the_o church_n officer_n and_o of_o their_o consults_z there_o be_v no_o further_a necessity_n of_o a_o monarchical_a government_n in_o the_o church_n for_o conserve_n the_o unity_n thereof_o 1_o if_o say_v
will_v premise_v some_o undeniable_a truth_n which_o speak_v the_o authority_n of_o church_n governor_n the_o obedience_n due_a thereunto_o the_o condition_n of_o schism_n and_o the_o danger_n and_o guilt_n of_o it_o the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o society_n or_o company_n under_o a_o regiment_n discipline_n government_n and_o the_o member_n constitute_v that_o society_n be_v either_o person_n teach_v guide_v govern_v or_o person_n teach_v guide_v govern_v and_o this_o in_o order_n to_o preserve_v all_o in_o unity_n and_o to_o advance_v every_o member_n of_o this_o visible_a society_n to_o a_o effectual_a and_o real_a participation_n of_o grace_n and_o union_n with_o christ_n the_o head_n and_o therefore_o and_o upon_o no_o less_o account_n be_v obedience_n due_a unto_o they_o eph._n 4.11_o 12_o 13_o 16_o and_o heb._n 13.17_o and_o he_o that_o will_v not_o hear_v the_o church_n to_o be_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n mat._n 16._o etc._n etc._n thus_o he_o and_o thus_o clear-sighted_a man_n be_v in_o the_o case_n where_o they_o be_v to_o require_v obedience_n but_o not_o so_o where_o to_o yield_v it_o this_o say_v of_o the_o schism_n of_o presbyter_n depart_v from_o their_o bishop_n the_o same_o dr._n hammond_n say_v 3._o say_v of_o schism_n c._n 3._o of_o the_o schism_n of_o bishop_n depart_v from_o their_o metropolitan_n and_o of_o metropolitan_o from_o their_o primat_n or_o patriarch_n now_o to_o go_v on_o if_o then_o for_o example_n the_o presbyter_n be_v bind_v upon_o such_o a_o guilt_n to_o obey_v his_o bishop_n than_o the_o subject_n of_o both_o the_o presbyter_n and_o the_o bishop_n when_o these_o two_o dissent_n be_v tie_v to_o adhere_v to_o the_o bishop_n not_o to_o the_o presbyter_n i.e._n to_o obey_v he_o who_o the_o other_o if_o he_o continue_v in_o his_o duty_n ought_v also_o to_o obey_v and_o sic_fw-la de_fw-la caeteris_fw-la these_o subordination_n therefore_o know_v christian_n also_o can_v but_o know_v in_o the_o division_n of_o church-governor_n distinct_a in_o dignity_n still_o those_o to_o who_o their_o obedience_n be_v thus_o fasten_v 2._o next_o 1._o §._o 25._o n._n 1._o in_o a_o body_n or_o court_n consist_v of_o many_o of_o a_o equal_a rank_n as_o council_n the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a judge_n do_v in_o which_o body_n in_o all_o or_o most_o cause_n or_o decision_n may_v and_o usual_o do_v happen_v some_o dissenter_n that_o here_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o rend_v the_o decree_n of_o such_o complex_fw-la body_n effectual_a that_o at_o least_o the_o much_o major_a part_n thereof_o join_v with_o the_o prime_a apostolic_a see_v conclude_v the_o whole_a the_o traditionary_a practice_n of_o the_o most_o universal_o allow_v council_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n as_o likewise_o the_o same_o practice_n in_o all_o civil_a court_n of_o the_o same_o composition_n do_v sufficient_o put_v this_o out_o of_o dispute_n if_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v so_o see_v what_o be_v say_v of_o this_o disc_n 1._o §_o 31_o 36_o 38._o where_o if_o it_o be_v further_o demand_v for_o legitimate_v the_o act_n of_o such_o a_o council_n or_o also_o for_o the_o sufficient_a acceptation_n by_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o such_o act_n or_o definition_n what_o proportion_n this_o major_a part_n whether_o define_v in_o council_n or_o accept_v out_o of_o it_o be_v to_o bear_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o minor_a or_o how_o much_o to_o exceed_v it_o i_o know_v not_o what_o better_a director_n herein_o we_o can_v have_v than_o the_o former_a custom_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o example_n and_o pattern_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n nor_o what_o great_a justification_n the_o proceed_n of_o late_a council_n can_v receive_v herein_o than_o the_o same_o practice_n as_o they_o be_v appear_v in_o those_o ancient_a council_n that_o be_v universal_o allow_v if_o then_o we_o stay_v here_o a_o little_a to_o review_v the_o proceed_n 2._o §._o 25._o n._n 2._o of_o the_o first_o council_n and_o think_v the_o late_a time_n may_v safe_o steer_v according_a to_o their_o course_n look_v into_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a we_o find_v in_o hilarius_n syncdis_n hilarius_n de_fw-fr syncdis_n no_o less_o than_o eighty_o bishop_n before_o this_o council_n be_v assemble_v mention_v to_o have_v disallow_v the_o reception_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d see_v also_o what_o bishop_n arius_n pretend_v to_o have_v side_v with_o he_o in_o his_o letter_n to_o euseb_n nicome_v write_v some_o year_n before_o the_o nicene_n council_n 5._o council_n apud_fw-la epiph_n haer._n 69._o theodoret._n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o and_o in_o the_o council_n also_o ⋆_o seventeen_o bishop_n some_o of_o note_n at_o the_o first_o to_o have_v dissent_v from_o the_o rest_n and_o after_o the_o council_n *_o arianism_n in_o the_o eastern_a part_n to_o have_v grow_v in_o a_o small_a time_n to_o a_o much_o great_a bulk_n support_v their_o cause_n with_o several_a unwary_a expression_n of_o former_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n as_o justin_n martyr_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n clemens_n alexand._n origen_n 69._o origen_n see_v pelavins_n in_o epiph._n she_o 69._o before_o a_o strict_a discussion_n of_o this_o controversy_n yet_o be_v this_o no_o diminution_n to_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o nicene_n decree_n or_o to_o a_o valid_a acceptation_n thereof_o both_o be_v do_v by_o a_o much_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n again_o in_o the_o three_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n 3._o §._o 25._o n._n 3._o we_o find_v john_n the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n with_o his_o oriental_a bishop_n above_o thirty_o favour_v nestorianism_n and_o oppose_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o council_n yet_o do_v not_o the_o other_o part_n of_o that_o council_n forbear_v to_o define_v anti-nestorianism_a without_o and_o against_o they_o and_o also_o to_o excommunicate_v they_o for_o their_o nonconformity_n to_o the_o major_a part_n nor_o do_v the_o christian_a world_n cease_v to_o account_v the_o act_n of_o this_o council_n valid_a without_o the_o acceptation_n thereof_o by_o this_o patriarch_n and_o his_o party_n these_o act_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n join_v with_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n neither_o suppose_v that_o this_o patriarch_n and_o his_o bishop_n and_o their_o successor_n have_v continue_v to_o this_o day_n as_o too_o many_o ever_o since_o in_o those_o part_n do_v and_o as_o they_o do_v for_o some_o time_n to_o oppose_v this_o decree_n can_v it_o have_v rescue_v nestorianism_n from_o be_v just_o repute_v a_o heresy_n though_o this_o party_n be_v so_o considerable_a as_o that_o the_o emperor_n retard_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o council_n censure_n upon_o they_o till_o that_o in_o the_o year_n next_o ensue_v the_o patriarch_n and_o most_o of_o the_o rest_n be_v regain_v to_o a_o peaceable_a submission_n to_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o her_o doctrine_n come_v we_o to_o the_o four_o general_n council_n of_o chalcedon_n 4._o §._o 25._o n._n 4._o two_o year_n before_o it_o in_o a_o question_n concern_v our_o lord_n consist_v of_o and_o in_o two_o nature_n distinct_a not_o only_o before_o but_o after_o their_o union_n in_o one_o person_n the_o prevalent_a party_n in_o a_o council_n of_o above_o 120_o bishop_n have_v define_v the_o contrary_a tanquam_fw-la de_fw-la fide_fw-la for_o which_o also_o they_o pretend_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n athanasius_n cyril_n alexand._n and_o gregory_n nazianz._n concern_v which_o father_n you_o may_v find_v eutyches_n 1._o eutyches_n in_o council_n constantinop_n apud_fw-la conc_fw-fr chalc._n act_n 1._o plead_v thus_o for_o himself_o vae_fw-la mihi_fw-la si_fw-la sanctos_fw-la patres_fw-la anathematizavero_fw-la and_o dioscorus_n thus_o prima_fw-la thus_o conc._n chalc_n actione_n prima_fw-la ego_fw-la testimonium_fw-la habeo_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la patrum_fw-la athanasii_fw-la gregorii_n cyrilli_n in_o multis_fw-la locis_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la oportet_fw-la dicere_fw-la post_fw-la adunationem_fw-la dvas_fw-la naturas_fw-la sed_fw-la unam_fw-la naturam_fw-la dei_fw-la verbi_fw-la incarnatam_fw-la ego_fw-la cum_fw-la patribus_fw-la ejicior_fw-la ego_fw-la defendo_fw-la patrum_fw-la dogmata_fw-la non_fw-la transgredior_fw-la in_o aliquo_fw-la &_o horum_fw-la testimonia_fw-la non_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la neque_fw-la transitoriè_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o libris_fw-la habeo_fw-la thus_o dioscorus_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o we_o find_v the_o subscription_n of_o 96_o bishop_n either_o delude_v or_o force_v as_o they_o complain_v afterward_o 4._o afterward_o v._o conc._n chalc._n act._n 1_o 4._o to_o dioscorus_n his_o definition_n in_o that_o former_a council_n but_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n notwithstanding_o such_o a_o opposition_n define_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n as_o of_o faith_n and_o depose_v the_o chief_a actor_n in_o this_o former_a council_n among_o which_o be_v the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o alexandria_n and_o to_o the_o great_a authority_n of_o this_o council_n all_o the_o rest_n save_o
if_o we_o may_v believe_v soave_fw-it 576._o soave_fw-it hist_o l._n 6_o p_o 576._o to_o have_v entertain_v this_o maxim_n that_o to_o establish_v a_o decree_n of_o reformation_n a_o major_a part_n of_o voice_n be_v sufficient_a but_o that_o a_o decree_n of_o faith_n can_v not_o be_v make_v if_o a_o considerable_a part_n do_v contradict_v but_o this_o considerable_a part_n must_v always_o be_v understand_v of_o such_o as_o be_v catholic_n i._n e._n by_o no_o former_o condemn_v heresy_n render_v uncapable_a of_o vote_v in_o the_o church_n council_n and_o last_o if_o a_o contest_v arise_v what_o a_o part_n may_v be_v call_v considerable_a to_o who_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o can_v be_v leave_v save_v to_o the_o same_o major_a part_n whether_o in_o or_o out_o of_o the_o council_n wherever_o all_o be_v not_o agree_v i_o see_v not_o this_o concern_v the_o necessity_n and_o the_o ancient_a practice_n of_o a_o much_o major_a part_n at_o least_o we_o keep_v still_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n its_o conclude_v the_o whole_a where_o it_o be_v also_o worth_a the_o note_n concern_v time_n past_a 1._o §._o 26._o n._n 1._o that_o though_o we_o set_v aside_o here_o how_o necessary_a the_o confirmation_n of_o council_n be_v by_o the_o always-esteemed_n most_o supreme_a authority_n ecclesiastical_a on_o earth_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o never_o any_o heresy_n now_o universal_o so_o account_v hitherto_o can_v be_v show_v in_o any_o age_n to_o have_v be_v confirm_v in_o any_o council_n or_o accept_v after_o it_o by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o christianity_n or_o of_o the_o church-governor_n thereof_o such_o especial_o as_o have_v right_o to_o vote_n in_o council_n because_o guilty_a of_o no_o heresy_n that_o have_v be_v declare_v such_o by_o a_o former_a council_n and_o for_o the_o future_a likewise_o before_o that_o any_o grievous_a and_o pernicious_a error_n shall_v spread_v so_o far_o as_o to_o infect_v a_o major_a part_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n and_o so_o be_v past_o all_o cure_n from_o this_o supreme_a court_n the_o church_n vigilancy_n from_o our_o lord_n be_v promise_v perpetual_a assistance_n and_o favour_n may_v be_v presume_v to_o be_v such_o as_o that_o her_o council_n either_o distribute_v in_o several_a provincial_a one_o or_o unite_v in_o a_o general_n will_v condemn_v it_o and_o then_o after_o such_o censure_n though_o its_o patron_n shall_v grow_v to_o a_o major_a part_n of_o christianity_n yet_o do_v they_o now_o to_o all_o clear_o appear_v i_o say_v not_o a_o less_o but_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n but_o yet_o all_o those_o text_n of_o scripture_n prophecy_n and_o promise_v there_o press_v by_o s._n austin_n against_o the_o donatist_n and_o the_o many_o argument_n he_o draw_v from_o they_o seem_v to_o evince_v the_o contrary_a that_o never_o any_o such_o sect_n shall_v be_v i_o mean_v of_o one_o denomination_n or_o conspire_v in_o any_o one_o heresy_n at_o any_o time_n that_o shall_v for_o the_o multitude_n of_o its_o follower_n and_o latitude_n of_o its_o extent_n exceed_v or_o match_v the_o catholic_n as_o for_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n of_o many_o different_a tenant_n and_o communion_n dissent_v from_o one_o another_o what_o magnitude_n or_o bulk_n the_o whole_a mass_n of_o they_o put_v together_o may_v amount_v to_o or_o whether_o not_o transcend_v the_o catholic_n it_o much_o matter_n not_o for_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v according_a to_o our_o creed_n always_o but_o one_o and_o a_o body_n unite_v in_o a_o due_a subordination_n of_o its_o governor_n in_o its_o service_n doctrine_n discipline_n etc._n etc._n so_o far_o as_o these_o model_n they_o it_o be_v sufficient_o for_o its_o magnitude_n and_o extent_n discern_v from_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o of_o any_o one_o society_n or_o church_n that_o have_v the_o former_a coherence_n in_o its_o member_n the_o catholic_n be_v the_o great_a and_o the_o most_o diffuse_a of_o which_o thus_o s._n austin_n observe_v 8._o observe_v de_fw-fr pastoribus_fw-la c._n 8._o non_fw-la omnes_fw-la haeretici_fw-la per_fw-la totam_fw-la faciem_fw-la terrae_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la haeretici_fw-la per_fw-la totam_fw-la faciem_fw-la terrae_fw-la alii_fw-la hîc_fw-la alii_fw-la ibi_fw-la alia_fw-la secta_fw-la in_o africâ_fw-la alia_fw-la haeresis_fw-la in_o oriente_fw-it alia_fw-la in_o egypto_n alia_fw-la in_o mesopotamiâ_fw-la diversis_fw-la locis_fw-la sunt_fw-la diversae_fw-la sed_fw-la una_fw-la mater_fw-la superbia_fw-la genuit_fw-la sicut_fw-la una_fw-la mater_fw-la nostra_fw-la catholica_fw-la omnes_fw-la christianos_n fideles_fw-la toto_fw-la orb_n diffusos_fw-la est_fw-la in_o africâ_fw-la pars_fw-la donati_n eunomiani_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o africa_n sed_fw-la cum_fw-la parte_fw-la donati_n est_fw-la hî_fw-la catholica_fw-la sunt_fw-la in_o oriente_fw-it eunomiani_n ibi_fw-la autem_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la pars_fw-la donati_n sed_fw-la cum_fw-la eunomianis_fw-la ibi_fw-la est_fw-la catholica_fw-la the_o sum_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n be_v every_o where_o and_o every_o where_o heresy_n but_o the_o catholic_n every_o where_o one_o the_o other_o diverse_a the_o great_a but_o many_o may_v be_v heresy_n the_o great_a that_o be_v one_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n there_o be_v two_o general_a council_n by_o protestant_n frequent_o urge_v for_o decree_a 2._o decree_a 25._o n._n 2._o or_o confirm_v heresy_n the_o second_o of_o ephesus_n and_o that_o of_o ariminum_n but_o one_a for_o that_o of_o ephesus_n both_o the_o whole_a west_n out_o of_o the_o council_n than_o the_o great_a and_o more_o dignify_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o the_o pope_n legate_n and_o likewise_o many_o eminent_a eastern_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n suffer_v much_o persecution_n for_o it_o from_o the_o present_a secular_a power_n dissent_v from_o the_o act_n thereof_o and_o the_o main_a body_n of_o bishop_n also_o that_o in_o the_o council_n subscribe_v to_o they_o complain_v in_o the_o follow_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n of_o force_n use_v and_o 2_o for_o that_o of_o ariminum_n one_a though_o the_o major_a part_n of_o it_o have_v be_v arrian_n yet_o these_o have_v be_v declare_v heretic_n already_o by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o so_o now_o no_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n 4._o catholic_n see_v before_o prop._n 4._o can_v right_o have_v no_o vote_n therein_o though_o the_o then_o arrian_n emperor_n force_v upon_o the_o council_n a_o admittance_n of_o they_o so_o that_o if_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church-governor_n general_o take_v of_o that_o age_n have_v maintain_v a_o heretical_a tenent_n yet_o this_o be_v after_o that_o the_o major_a part_n of_o christianity_n in_o a_o former_a council_n and_o in_o a_o general_n acceptation_n thereof_o have_v condemn_v this_o tenent_n for_o heretical_a and_o so_o thence_o christian_n may_v clear_o discern_v the_o maintainer_n of_o it_o to_o be_v no_o more_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n nor_o their_o present_a gu●des_n especial_o the_o rest_n preserve_v a_o communion_n separate_v from_o they_o but_o 2_o he_o 3_o he_o 26._o n._n 3_o that_o please_v to_o examine_v the_o history_n of_o this_o council_n and_o of_o these_o time_n i_o think_v will_v find_v no_o ground_n to_o affirm_v arrianisme_n at_o any_o time_n to_o have_v infect_v or_o possess_v a_o major_a part_n of_o christianity_n which_o because_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n much_o insist_v on_o by_o protestant_n labour_v thereby_o to_o prove_v for_o some_o time_n a_o defection_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n from_o one_o of_o the_o great_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n i_o suppose_v it_o worth_a my_o pain_n though_o step_v aside_o a_o little_a from_o my_o present_a design_n to_o give_v you_o a_o brief_a narrative_n thereof_o in_o which_o if_o already_o satisfy_v you_o may_v omit_v it_o pass_z on_z to_z §_o 27._o n_o 4._o if_o we_o review_v the_o change_n that_o be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n before_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n and_o seleucia_n one_a for_o the_o east_n though_o several_a eminent_a catholic_n bishop_n by_o constantius_n his_o power_n favour_v the_o semi-arrians_a be_v expel_v from_o their_o seat_n upon_o several_a particular_a false_a crimination_n and_o among_o other_o the_o pretence_n of_o their_o maintain_v sobellianisme_n or_o confound_v the_o person_n of_o trinity_n yet_o be_v nothing_o then_o declare_v against_o the_o nicene_n creed_n and_o after_o this_o expulsion_n there_o be_v in_o a_o council_n hold_v under_o he_o at_o antioch_n a._n d._n 341_o of_o 99_o bishop_n assemble_v only_o 36_o arrian_n the_o rest_n orthodox_n 341._o orthodox_n see_v baron_n a._n d._n 341._o though_o the_o arrian_n party_n indeed_o more_o powerful_a with_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o form_n of_o faith_n draw_v up_o there_o be_v though_o diminutive_a to_o the_o nicene_n yet_o catholic_n and_o such_o say_v sozomen_n 5._o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 5._o ut_fw-la neque_fw-la arriani_n neque_fw-la concilii_fw-la niceni_n
and_o suspicious_a the_o catholic_n bishop_n at_o ariminum_n refuse_v to_o subscribe_v it_o save_v upon_o some_o addition_n to_o be_v annex_v so_o to_o secure_v the_o church_n faith_n from_o arrianism_n and_o other_o missconstruction_n after_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v now_o leave_v out_o in_o which_o addition_n to_o give_v you_o severus_n his_o word_n 2._o word_n hist_o l._n 2._o primùm_fw-la damnatus_fw-la est_fw-la arrius_n totaque_fw-la ejus_fw-la perfidia_fw-la deinde_fw-la filius_fw-la deo_fw-la patri_fw-la aequalis_fw-la &_o sine_fw-la initio_fw-la sine_fw-la tempore_fw-la pronuntiatur_fw-la which_o thing_n infer_v the_o son_n eternity_n and_o either_o consubstantiality_n with_o the_o father_n or_o polytheisme_n deny_v by_o the_o arrian_n tum_o valen_n say_v he_o tanquam_fw-la nostros_fw-la adjuvans_fw-la subjecit_fw-la sententiam_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la creaturam_fw-la sicut_fw-la caeteras_fw-la creaturas_fw-la i._n e._n as_o he_o be_v understand_v by_o the_o council_n sicut_fw-la cetera_fw-la omne_fw-la sunt_fw-la creaturae_fw-la to_o these_o s._n jerom_n add_v as_o he_o say_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o council_n itself_o several_a anathema_n pronounce_v and_o consent_v to_o by_o the_o arrian_n among_o which_o this_o be_v one_o si_fw-mi quis_fw-la filium_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la dixerit_fw-la aeternum_fw-la cum_fw-la patre_fw-la anathema_n sit_v these_o thing_n then_o be_v so_o submit_v to_o be_v the_o arrian_n party_n and_o the_o catholic_n faith_n now_o think_v secure_a the_o council_n be_v dismiss_v these_o thing_n you_o may_v see_v relate_v more_o at_o large_a by_o s._n jerom_n luciferian_n jerom_n dialog_n advers._fw-la luciferian_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n in_o this_o council_n for_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o luciferian_o a_o sect_n that_o after_o the_o reflourish_a of_o the_o catholic_n religion_n will_v not_o admit_v those_o bishop_n who_o vote_v at_o ariminum_n or_o have_v afterward_o communicate_v with_o the_o arrian_n into_o their_o communion_n who_o likewise_o urge_v then_o as_o well_o as_o the_o donatist_n afterward_o and_o the_o reform_a now_o of_o the_o time_n before_o luther_n that_o christ_n have_v no_o church_n except_a general_o corrupt_a and_o the_o text_n 18.8_o text_n luk_n 18.8_o cum_fw-la venerit_fw-la filius_fw-la hominis_fw-la non_fw-la inveniet_fw-la fidem_fw-la super_fw-la terram_fw-la to_o which_o see_v s._n jerom_n answer_n in_o the_o same_o place_n this_o for_o ariminum_n at_o the_o same_o time_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o motive_n the_o conclude_v a_o firm_a peace_n in_o the_o church_n universal_a be_v another_o council_n hold_v in_o the_o east_n 1._o §._o 27._o n._n 1._o at_o seleucia_n where_o by_o the_o divine_a providence_n s._n hilary_n than_o a_o exile_n for_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n in_o the_o east_n be_v present_a inform_v the_o council_n of_o the_o constancy_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n in_o the_o nicene_n belief_n and_o in_o the_o council_n himself_o earnest_o contend_v for_o it_o be_v also_o assist_v by_o the_o egyptian_a bishop_n except_o georgius_n the_o alexandrian_a usurper_n as_o himself_o say_v in_o his_o book_n contra_fw-la constantium_fw-la this_o council_n suppose_v in_o a_o great_a part_n semi-arrian_a proceed_v no_o further_a than_o only_o to_o the_o confirm_v of_o the_o forementioned_a antiochian_a creed_n in_o which_o i_o say_v nothing_o be_v contain_v not_o catholic_n and_o afterward_o to_o the_o excommunicate_v of_o the_o arrian_n but_o after_o this_o council_n dissolve_v the_o subscription_n make_v at_o ariminum_n by_o the_o occidental_n be_v bring_v into_o the_o east_n and_o the_o like_a for_o a_o general_a union_n with_o great_a importunity_n require_v by_o the_o emperor_n many_o of_o these_o seleucian_n bishop_n at_o last_o yield_v to_o it_o the_o arrian_n agent_n first_o pretend_v but_o false_o to_o the_o west_n that_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n will_v by_o no_o mean_n admit_v of_o substantia_fw-la to_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o then_o urge_v to_o these_o eastern_a bishop_n profess_v it_o the_o prescription_n of_o the_o west_n for_o omit_v of_o it_o meanwhile_o by_o the_o same_o deception_n and_o fraud_n be_v this_o subscription_n procure_v in_o the_o east_n from_o the_o bishop_n most_o of_o they_o orthodox_n or_o at_o most_o but_o semi-arrians_a as_o at_o ariminum_n of_o which_o seleucian_n bishop_n sozomen_n say_v 4.18_o say_v l._n 4.18_o that_o omnes_fw-la paucis_fw-la exceptis_fw-la in_fw-la eo_fw-la uno_fw-la dissederunt_fw-la quod_fw-la pars_fw-la filium_fw-la patri_fw-la consubstantialem_fw-la pars_fw-la autem_fw-la substantia_fw-la similem_fw-la esse_fw-la dicerent_fw-la and_o of_o the_o fraud_n use_v there_o towards_o the_o orthodox_n see_v muchwhat_a the_o same_o complaint_n make_v by_o nazianzen_n his_o father_n a_o catholic_n bishop_n among_o other_o be_v involve_v in_o it_o as_o be_v by_o s._n jerom_n for_o the_o west_n impietati_fw-la say_v he_o athana●_n he_o orat._n in_o land_n athana●_n per_fw-la script●_n dogmatis_fw-la ambiguitatem_fw-la fenestram_fw-la aperuit_fw-la concilium_fw-la constantinopolitanum_n hoc_fw-la quidem_fw-la praetextu_fw-la quasi_fw-la scripturam_fw-la vereretur_fw-la ac_fw-la vocum_fw-la probatissirnarum_fw-la usum_fw-la amplecteretur_fw-la and_o ear_n permultos_fw-la è_fw-la nobis_fw-la inuictos_fw-la alioqui_fw-la viros_fw-la in_fw-la fraudem_fw-la impulit_fw-la qui_fw-la quamvis_fw-la ment_fw-la nequaquam_fw-la prolapsi_fw-la fuerint_fw-la subscriptione_n tamen_fw-la transversi_fw-la acti_fw-la sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n see_v also_o liberius_n his_o letter_n to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n in_o socrates_n l._n 4._o c._n 11._o yet_o be_v not_o this_o subscription_n any_o more_o than_o the_o western_a at_o ariminum_n so_o universal_a but_o that_o beside_o athanasius_n and_o most_o of_o the_o egyptian_a bishop_n there_o be_v several_a other_o of_o note_n that_o full_o and_o open_o profess_v the_o nicene_n faith_n as_o cyril_n bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n meletius_n who_o make_v that_o valiant_a confession_n thereof_o not_o only_o with_o his_o mouth_n but_o when_o that_o stop_v with_o his_o hand_n before_o the_o people_n of_o antioch_n ensebius_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o other_o nor_o yet_o be_v it_o so_o grateful_a to_o the_o arrian_n but_o that_o in_o a_o meeting_n of_o they_o short_o after_o at_o antioch_n 23._o antioch_n sozozem_n l._n 4._o c._n 23._o they_o grow_v bold_a to_o alter_v it_o and_o at_o last_o to_o put_v in_o the_o creed_n not_o only_o what_o be_v general_a or_o ambiguous_a but_o false_a i.e._n their_o own_o anti-nicene_n tenent_n thus_o pass_v constantius_n his_o time_n for_o some_o three_o year_n 2._o §._o 27._o n._n 2._o after_o the_o ariminum_n subsicription_n very_o severe_a but_o he_o die_v the_o face_n of_o the_o church_n be_v sudden_o alter_v and_o julian_n succeed_v he_o equal_a to_o all_o or_o rather_o less_o disaffect_v to_o the_o catholic_n though_o a_o friend_n to_o none_o the_o nicene_n faith_n flourish_v as_o former_o nor_o so_o much_o by_o a_o new_a conversion_n of_o the_o arrian_n bishop_n to_o the_o truth_n as_o by_o a_o restorement_n of_o the_o former_o deprive_v catholic_n bishop_n to_o their_o honour_n and_o the_o possession_n of_o their_o church_n of_o which_o thus_o s._n jerom_n 2._o jerom_n adversus_fw-la lucifer_n l._n 2._o periclitabatur_fw-la navicula_fw-la apostolorum_fw-la dominus_fw-la excitatur_fw-la imperat_fw-la tempestati_fw-la bestia_fw-la constantius_n moritur_fw-la tranquillitas_fw-la rediit_fw-la manifestius_fw-la dicam_fw-la omnes_fw-la episcopi_fw-la qui_fw-la de_fw-la propriis_fw-la sedibus_fw-la fuerant_fw-la exterminati_fw-la per_fw-la indulgentiam_fw-la novi_fw-la principis_fw-la julian_n who_o favour_v at_o first_o the_o catholic_n ad_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la redeunt_fw-la julian_n slay_v after_o some_o year_n under_o valens_n rule_v the_o east_n and_o side_v with_o the_o arrian_n a_o new_a storm_n arise_v there_o against_o the_o nicene_n faith_n and_o a_o persecution_n and_o expulsion_n of_o many_o of_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n and_o these_o time_n it_o be_v that_o s._n basil_n in_o his_o epistle_n so_o sad_o deplore_v but_o one_a this_o persecution_n extend_v not_o to_o the_o west_n where_o valentinian_n a_o catholic_n emperor_n rule_v and_o where_o be_v only_o a_o toleration_n of_o the_o arrian_n and_o so_o some_o of_o they_o by_o seem_v catholic_n as_o auxentius_n bishop_n of_o milan_n before_o s._n ambrose_n do_v some_o hurt_n but_o then_o by_o gratian_n his_o son_n and_o successor_n this_o toleration_n be_v revoke_v and_o also_o in_o the_o east_n upon_o valens_n his_o uncle_n death_n be_v the_o catholic_n bishop_n restore_v again_o to_o their_o seat_n and_o the_o arrian_n crush_v 2_o in_o the_o east_n it_o never_o swell_v so_o high_a but_o that_o the_o body_n of_o its_o prelate_n also_o though_o suffer_v much_o from_o the_o other_o favour_v party_n remain_v catholic_n as_o may_v appear_v more_o particular_o by_o liberius_n his_o letter_n to_o the_o oriental_a bishop_n 11._o bishop_n apud_fw-la socr._n l._n 4._o c._n 11._o and_o the_o 75_o and_o 293._o epistle_n of_o s._n basil_n write_v in_o the_o same_o time_n of_o valens_n his_o persecution_n in_o which_o 75th_o epistle_n thus_o s._n basil_n fuerat_fw-la autem_fw-la
jurisdiction_n neither_o can_v perform_v any_o act_n thereof_o quae_fw-la jurisdictio_fw-la descendit_fw-la ordinatis_fw-la à_fw-la superiore_fw-la as_o he_o note_v in_o the_o margin_n out_o of_o bonavent_n and_o then_o we_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o lawful_a jurisdiction_n of_o such_o pastor_n leave_v these_o other_o mark_v must_v return_v to_o the_o former_a rule_n deliver_v §_o 23._o chap._n iu._n a_o application_n of_o the_o former_a proposition_n in_o a_o search_n which_o of_o the_o opposite_a present_a church_n or_o ecclesiastic_a governor_n thereof_o be_v our_o true_a guide_n §_o 30._o several_a motive_n persuade_v that_o the_o roman_a and_o other_o western_a church_n unite_v with_o it_o and_o the_o head_n thereof_o s._n peter_n successor_n be_v it_o one_a their_o be_v the_o very_a same_o body_n with_o that_o which_o protestant_n grant_v be_v 150_o year_n ago_o this_o guide_n §_o 33._o 2_o that_o body_n to_o which_o christian_n ought_v to_o submit_v if_o the_o rule_n deliver_v prop._n 12._o 23._o 12._o §._o 23._o be_v observe_v §_o 35._o 3_o that_o body_n that_o own_v and_o adhere_v to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o all_o those_o former_a council_n which_o the_o church_n of_o precede_a age_n have_v receive_v as_o general_n or_o oblige_v as_o well_o those_o since_o as_o those_o before_o the_o six_o or_o seven_o century_n §_o 37._o §_o 30_o a_o perpetual_a be_v of_o these_o spiritual_a guide_n infallible_o direct_v in_o necessary_a controversy_n and_o the_o due_a subjection_n christian_n have_v to_o and_o dependence_n on_o they_o be_v thus_o assert_v in_o the_o former_a proposition_n the_o next_o enquiry_n will_v be_v which_o or_o where_o now_o be_v this_o present_a visible_a society_n and_o church_n consist_v of_o such_o a_o govern_v clergy_n and_o right_o instruct_v people_n of_o which_o learned_a protestant_n 3._o protestant_n see_v before_o prop._n 3._o §._o 3._o seem_v to_o accord_v with_o catholic_n that_o some_o where_o now_o it_o be_v that_o in_o no_o age_n nor_o at_o any_o time_n it_o cease_v and_o that_o it_o always_o have_v be_v hitherto_o and_o ever_o shall_v be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n now_o general_a council_n or_o representative_a of_o the_o present_a church_n catholic_n unite_v in_o one_o body_n we_o see_v there_o be_v none_o at_o this_o present_a but_o the_o same_o present_a governor_n there_o be_v that_o do_v constitute_v and_o sit_v in_o these_o council_n when_o call_v only_o these_o now_o not_o unite_v but_o disperse_v through_o the_o several_a nation_n of_o christendom_n and_o these_o present_a governor_n as_o to_o this_o western_a part_n of_o christendom_n which_o indeed_o be_v by_o much_o the_o more_o considerable_a the_o eastern_a be_v so_o great_o debilitate_a and_o consume_v by_o the_o heavy_a yoke_n of_o mahometan_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o chief_a body_n or_o communion_n one_o body_n of_o they_o there_o be_v *_o which_o adher_v to_o the_o prime_a patriarch_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o have_v do_v from_o their_o first_o christianity_n acknowledge_v a_o due_a subordination_n unto_o he_o and_z *_o which_o also_o general_o admit_v for_o its_o present_a tenant_n and_o belief_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n which_o have_v be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o church_n in_o former_a age_n not_o only_o those_o of_o a_o few_o of_o the_o first_o council_n which_o state_v matter_n of_o ancient_a controversy_n concern_v the_o trinity_n the_o nature_n and_o person_n of_o our_o lord_n etc._n etc._n now_o fix_v in_o the_o common_a creed_n but_o those_o of_o all_o the_o rest_n since_o which_o have_v state_v matter_n of_o late_a debate_n and_o many_o also_o of_o those_o point_n which_o be_v at_o the_o present_a dispute_v by_o protestant_n 2._o protestant_n disc_n 1._o §._o 50._o n._n 2._o *_o which_o admit_v i_o say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o these_o council_n even_o to_o the_o present_a time_n some_o few_o only_o except_v either_o which_o the_o roman_a patriarch_n with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o west_n never_o approve_v or_o which_o great_a council_n come_v after_o they_o have_v annul_v and_o in_o particular_a of_o the_o last_o council_n that_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n that_o of_o trent_n which_o be_v purposely_o assemble_v about_o and_o have_v decide_v most_o of_o the_o present_a protestant_a controversy_n to_o which_o great_a body_n in_o the_o west_n i_o may_v join_v the_o eastern_a church_n as_o agree_v with_o it_o and_o not_o remonstrate_v against_o its_o conciliary_a decree_n in_o most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n question_v by_o protestant_n 158._o protestant_n see_v disc_n 3._o §._o 158._o and_o in_o their_o present_a public_a service_n and_o rite_n all_o as_o dissonant_n if_o not_o more_o from_o the_o protestant_n present_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n as_o the_o roman_a be_v and_o i_o think_v all_o consider_v of_o the_o two_o the_o union_n of_o the_o reform_a more_o difficult_a to_o the_o oriental_a church_n §_o 32_o another_o body_n of_o present_a governor_n there_o be_v that_o be_v within_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n but_o not_o allow_v by_o the_o former_a to_o be_v within_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n as_o the_o church_n catholic_n all_o grant_n be_v or_o may_v be_v much_o narrow_a than_o christianity_n because_o all_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n be_v christian_n but_o not_o catholic_n who_o have_v heretofore_o together_o with_o the_o rest_n in_o their_o forefather_n hold_v a_o communion_n with_o and_o acknowledge_v a_o subordination_n to_o the_o western_a patriarch_n and_o have_v also_o submit_v to_o all_o those_o late_a council_n to_o which_o the_o rest_n till_o a_o little_a before_o the_o last_o council_n that_o of_o trent_n yet_o have_v since_o now_o somewhat_o above_o a_o hundred_o year_n renounce_v external_a communion_n with_o the_o say_a patriarch_n and_o the_o church_n adhere_v to_o he_o i._n e._n to_o continue_v therein_o any_o long_a upon_o those_o term_n upon_o which_o their_o forefather_n former_o enjoy_v it_o and_o have_v withdraw_v their_o obedience_n from_o the_o former_a council_n precede_v their_o reformation_n that_o have_v be_v hold_v in_o the_o church_n for_o almost_o this_o 1000_o year_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o have_v be_v of_o note_n and_o who_o decree_n be_v extant_a and_o which_o have_v state_v any_o matter_n of_o controversy_n the_o entire_a act_n of_o none_o of_o which_o they_o can_v own_v and_o stand_v to_o even_o those_o two_o council_n francoford_n council_n conc._n constantinop_n sub_fw-la copronymo_n &_o francoford_n which_o they_o urge_v as_o favour_v they_o in_o matter_n of_o image_n be_v against_o they_o in_o some_o other_o point_n and_o the_o doctrine_n also_o of_o those_o time_n wherein_o most_o of_o these_o council_n be_v hold_v be_v as_o they_o say_v much_o corrupt_v many_o of_o they_o chief_o support_v and_o justify_v this_o their_o strange_a discession_n from_o their_o mother_n the_o church_n with_o a_o strong_a conceit_n that_o she_o have_v be_v for_o many_o former_a age_n turn_v a_o whore_n 17_o whore_n rev._n c._n 17_o and_o out_o of_o a_o strange_a imagination_n they_o have_v of_o a_o antichristian_a general_n defection_n happen_v not_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n though_o that_o but_o too_o apparent_a in_o mahometanisme_n but_o in_o it_o ever_o since_o the_o five_o or_o six_o century_n or_o some_o also_o say_v high_a according_a to_o the_o time_n wherein_o the_o church_n common_a doctrine_n or_o practice_n begin_v first_o to_o displease_v they_o yet_o this_o fancy_n after_o that_o by_o divine_a permission_n it_o have_v have_v its_o full_a influence_n in_o encourage_v so_o great_a a_o innovation_n and_o change_v in_o religion_n as_o will_v hardly_o have_v be_v so_o vigorous_o prosecute_v upon_o any_o other_o motive_n whatever_o luther_n the_o first_o reformer_n help_v himself_o more_o with_o these_o word_n antichrist_n and_o babylon_n continual_o drop_v from_o his_o pen_n than_o by_o all_o his_o other_o argument_n this_o fancy_n i_o say_v now_o of_o late_o begin_v to_o be_v by_o the_o more_o wise_a and_o learned_a among_o they_o lay_v aside_o after_o they_o have_v discover_v the_o mischief_n also_o it_o begin_v to_o work_v in_o the_o shake_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o several_a other_o necessary_a and_o apostolical_a constitution_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o more_o sober_a will_v have_v to_o be_v retain_v still_o in_o the_o new_a model_n of_o religion_n but_o the_o other_o more_o zealous_a to_o be_v eject_v with_o the_o rest_n to_o satisfy_v yourself_o in_o which_o matter_n you_o may_v view_v h._n grotius_n apocalypse_v grotius_n note_n on_o the_o apocalypse_v and_o mr._n thorndike'_v etc._n thorndike'_v right_o of_o church_n in_o the_o review_n p._n clvi_o etc._n etc._n and_o dr._n hammon'ds_o apocalyps_n hammon'ds_o in_o his_o premonition_n concern_v the_o apocalyps_n new_a scheme_n of_o antichrist_n and_o his_o kingdom_n
as_o dr._n field_n it_o be_v that_o form_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n and_o explication_n of_o the_o several_a part_n thereof_o 375._o thereof_o of_o the_o ch._n p._n 375._o which_o the_o first_o christian_n receive_v of_o the_o same_o apostle_n that_o deliver_v to_o they_o the_o scripture_n commend_v to_o posterity_n thus_o he_o this_o then_o be_v the_o tradition_n that_o be_v chief_o vindicate_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n it_o be_v not_o the_o deficiency_n of_o scripture_n as_o to_o all_o the_o main_a and_o prime_a and_o universal_o necessary-to-be-known_a article_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o there_o be_v any_o necessity_n that_o these_o be_v supply_v and_o complete_v with_o other_o not_o write_v traditional_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o catholic_n do_v question_n but_o the_o non-clearness_n of_o scripture_n for_o several_a of_o these_o point_n such_o as_o that_o they_o may_v be_v miss-understood_a which_o non-c●earness_a of_o they_o infer_v a_o necessity_n of_o make_v use_n of_o the_o church_n tradition_n for_o a_o true_a exposition_n and_o sense_n be_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o assert_v and_o wonder_v that_o after_o the_o appearance_n of_o so_o many_o grievous_a heresy_n and_o shall_v deny_v for_o as_o to_o the_o scripture_n contain_v all_o the_o chief_a and_o material_a point_n of_o a_o christian_n belief_n what_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v there_o except_o that_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n also_o grant_n can_v be_v learn_v out_o of_o scripture_n and_o except_v those_o practical_o wherein_o the_o church_n only_o require_v a_o belief_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o they_o it_o be_v enough_o if_o they_o can_v be_v show_v to_o be_v against_o scripture_n i_o say_v what_o speculative_a article_n of_o faith_n be_v there_o for_o which_o catholic_n rest_v mere_o on_o unwritten_a tradition_n and_o do_v not_o for_o it_o allege_v scripture_n i_o mean_v even_o that_o canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o protestant_n allow_v a_o thing_n observe_v also_o by_o dr._n field_n 20._o field_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o but_o too_o much_o extend_v this_o be_v so_o clear_a say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v no_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v grant_v no_o principal_a point_n thereof_o deliver_v by_o bare_a and_o only_a tradition_n that_o therein_o the_o romanist_n contrary_a themselves_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n the_o same_o thing_n they_o pretend_v to_o hold_v by_o tradition_n as_o we_o shall_v find_v if_o we_o run_v through_o the_o thing_n question_v between_o they_o and_o we_o they_o contrary_v not_o themselves_o in_o their_o hold_v several_a thing_n to_o be_v deliver_v clear_o by_o tradition_n which_o be_v also_o but_o obscure_o or_o more_o evadable_o contain_v in_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n again_o 377._o again_o ib._n p._n 377._o so_o that_o for_o matter_n of_o faith_n say_v he_o we_o may_v conclude_v according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o best_a and_o most_o learned_a of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o either_o express_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o at_o least_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n from_o thence_o and_o by_o other_o thing_n evident_a in_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n or_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n to_o be_v conclude_v thus_o he_o i_o say_v then_o not_o this_o whether_o the_o main_a or_o if_o you_o will_v the_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o to_o all_o point_n necessary_a by_o all_o to_o be_v explicit_o believe_v be_v contain_v there_o but_o this_o whether_o so_o clear_o that_o the_o unlearned_a use_v a_o right_a diligence_n can_v therein_o mistake_v or_o do_v not_o need_v therein_o another_o guide_n be_v the_o thing_n here_o contest_v §_o 41_o for_o a_o particular_a reply_n then_o to_o what_o be_v here_o say_v to_o α_n one_a i_o ask_v if_o all_o necessary_n be_v clear_o reveal_v α_n r._n to_o α_n and_o all_o necessary_a controversy_n clear_o decide_v in_o scripture_n even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a how_o have_v controversy_n in_o necessary_n as_o concern_v the_o trinity_n our_o lord_n deity_n and_o humanity_n etc._n etc._n in_o several_a age_n arise_v and_o gain_v many_o follower_n here_o will_v they_o say_v that_o such_o controversy_n be_v not_o in_o necessary_n how_o then_o come_v the_o first_o general_n council_n extol_v by_o protestant_n to_o put_v they_o in_o the_o creed_n or_o to_o exact_a assent_n to_o they_o upon_o anathema_n which_o council_n they_o affirm_v in_o non-necessaries_a fallible_a and_o in_o what_o they_o be_v fallible_a unjust_o impose_v assent_n or_o will_v they_o say_v that_o they_o be_v in_o necessary_n and_o that_o the_o unlearned_a may_v easy_o discern_v and_o decide_v they_o and_o that_o not_o by_o tradition_n but_o only_a scripture_n how_o happen_v it_o then_o that_o heretofore_o so_o many_o learned_a unlearned_a when_o forsake_v the_o church_n guidance_n err_v in_o they_o but_o if_o they_o say_v this_o happen_v for_o want_n of_o a_o due_a diligence_n in_o the_o search_n of_o the_o scripture_n thus_o they_o leave_v man_n in_o great_a perplexity_n when_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a and_o only_o obscure_a to_o they_o through_o their_o negligent_a search_n and_o so_o when_o the_o point_n perhaps_o may_v be_v necessary_a thus_o a_o illiterate_a christian_n not_o discern_v from_o clear_a scripture_n whether_o sociniansme_n or_o antisocinianisme_a be_v the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o he_o be_v very_o solicitous_a to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o and_o consult_v they_o concern_v it_o they_o tell_v he_o there_o be_v no_o other_o director_n leave_v he_o beside_o scripture_n who_o judgement_n he_o may_v secure_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n or_o council_n here_o be_v wave_v by_o they_o because_o this_o judgement_n allow_v or_o authorize_v will_v infer_v the_o belief_n of_o some_o other_o point_n which_o they_o approve_v not_o only_a this_o satisfaction_n they_o seem_v to_o leave_v he_o that_o if_o neither_o side_n be_v clear_a to_o he_o in_o scripture_n neither_o much_o matter_n it_o which_o side_n he_o hold_v for_o truth_n for_o god_n say_v they_o have_v there_o clear_o reveal_v all_o necessary_n but_o he_o inquire_v further_o whether_o they_o do_v not_o firm_o believe_v anti-socinianism_a and_o also_o ground_n their_o faith_n of_o this_o upon_o the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n in_o it_o and_o then_o it_o appear_v to_o they_o clear_a in_o scripture_n how_o they_o know_v but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v a_o necessary_a truth_n and_o so_o his_o salvation_n ruin_v if_o he_o believe_v the_o contrary_a here_o what_o they_o can_v answer_v that_o will_v not_o more_o perplex_v he_o i_o see_v not_o since_o so_o long_a as_o he_o may_v possible_o fail_v in_o a_o due_a diligence_n though_o only_o require_v according_a to_o his_o condition_n he_o can_v be_v satisfy_v whether_o the_o point_n to_o every_o due_a searcher_n be_v not_o clear_a in_o scripture_n and_o also_o be_v not_o a_o necessary_a nor_o yet_o will_v they_o allow_v he_o any_o other_o certain_a director_n in_o it_o but_o the_o same_o scripture_n which_o appear_v to_o he_o ambiguous_a hear_v what_o mr._n stillingfleet_n interpose_v in_o this_o matter_n it_o seem_v reasonable_a say_v he_o 58._o he_o ration_n account_n p._n 58._o that_o because_o art_n and_o subtlety_n may_v be_v use_v by_o such_o who_o seek_v to_o pervert_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n and_o to_o wrest_v the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o deliver_v it_o so_o far_o from_o their_o proper_a meaning_n that_o very_o few_o ordinary_a capacity_n may_v be_v able_a to_o clear_v themselves_o to_o such_o mist_n as_o be_v cast_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o succeed_a age_n may_v be_v a_o very_a useful_a way_n but_o why_o not_o a_o necessary_a way_n i_o pray_v upon_o the_o former_a supposa_fw-mi for_o we_o to_o embrace_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n especial_o in_o the_o great_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n as_o for_o instance_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o trinity_n therefore_o you_o see_v in_o the_o great_a article_n scripture_n confess_v not_o so_o plain_a especial_o to_o the_o unlearned_a and_o ordinary_a capacity_n §_o 42_o 2_o lie_n if_o all_o necessary_n so_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n may_v we_o not_o so_o much_o the_o more_o secure_o and_o certain_o rely_v on_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a guide_n and_o teacher_n in_o they_o to_o who_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v as_o or_o more_o plain_a than_o to_o we_o especial_o on_o their_o judgement_n when_o assemble_v in_o a_o general_n council_n on_o it_o for_o these_o necessary_n at_o least_o it_o seem_v no_o and_o that_o the_o case_n be_v now_o alter_v even_o now_o necessary_n be_v so_o plain_a in_o scripture_n as_o the_o unlearned_a use_v ordinary_a diligence_n can_v not_o mistake_v in_o they_o now_o necessary_n be_v
again_o he_o use_v the_o ordinary_a care_n of_o person_n desire_v instruction_n can_v but_o come_v to_o know_v its_o council_n and_o their_o definition_n its_o doctrine_n and_o law_n which_o we_o find_v as_o the_o leader_n of_o all_o sect_n do_v they_o so_o those_o of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v studious_a to_o divulge_v and_o publish_v so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v by_o he_o consider_v his_o condition_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o the_o profession_n or_o practice_n thereof_o require_v of_o he_o for_o example_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o be_v there_o use_v the_o ordinary_a care_n necessary_a in_o matter_n of_o his_o salvation_n that_o first_o can_v easy_o discern_v this_o church_n from_o the_o several_a other_o late_a and_o unheaded_a sect_n that_o be_v in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o this_o church_n know_v who_o may_v not_o easy_o attain_v therein_o to_o a_o knowledge_n also_o of_o its_o article_n of_o religion_n and_o canon_n its_o synod_n or_o convocation_n deliver_v by_o the_o common_a tradition_n and_o by_o the_o church-guide_n and_o public_a write_n daily_o inculcate_v so_o far_o as_o the_o understanding_n of_o they_o be_v to_o he_o necessary_a the_o same_o evidence_n therefore_o in_o these_o thing_n must_v be_v allow_v not_o to_o be_v want_v to_o those_o who_o have_v once_o find_v among_o the_o many_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o church_n which_o be_v their_o right_a guide_n §_o 49_o and_o little_a reason_n have_v the_o reform_v to_o affirm_v a_o necessity_n that_o all_o necessary_n shall_v be_v make_v most_o evident_a even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a in_o the_o scripture_n if_o assert_v on_o this_o account_n because_o such_o people_n have_v no_o mean_n of_o attain_v any_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o they_o from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n and_o with_o little_a reareason_n seem_v mr._n stillingfleet_n and_o other_o to_o affirm_v which_o yet_o be_v use_v by_o many_o late_a protestant-writer_n as_o a_o main_a ground_n of_o evacuate_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n *_o that_o it_o be_v no_o easy_a a_o thing_n to_o know_v what_o the_o church_n define_v than_o what_o scripture_n determine_v and_o that_o the_o same_o art_n that_o can_v evade_v the_o text_n of_o scripture_n will_v equal_o elude_v the_o definition_n of_o council_n 21._o tillot_v rule_n of_o say_v p._n 21._o as_o if_o all_o writing_n be_v equal_o plain_a or_o equal_o obscure_a or_o if_o none_o free_a from_o therefore_o all_o equal_o liable_a to_o cavil_n again_o *_o that_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o willingness_n of_o all_o protestant_n to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o scripture_n will_v hold_v as_o well_o or_o better_a for_o their_o unity_n as_o that_o of_o the_o readiness_n of_o all_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o sense_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n will_v hold_v for_o their_o unity_n and_o this_o unity_n to_o be_v effect_v by_o the_o scripture_n he_o speak_v of_o as_o to_o those_o matter_n wherein_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n be_v controvert_v among_o christian_n for_o in_o such_o only_a it_o be_v that_o christian_n for_o their_o unity_n seek_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o they_o undertake_v to_o defend_v this_o that_o a_o live_a judge_n set_v up_o for_o the_o expound_v of_o the_o dubious_a place_n of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o sentence_n of_o which_o judge_n all_o be_v agree_v to_o assent_v yet_o be_v no_o more_o effective_a for_o end_v controversy_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n and_o for_o unite_n party_n than_o the_o law_n themselves_o be_v without_o such_o judge_n mr._n stillingfleet_v word_n be_v 101._o be_v p_o 101._o your_o great_a argument_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o your_o party_n because_o whatever_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o man_n be_v they_o be_v ready_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o censure_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n if_o it_o be_v good_a will_v hold_v as_o well_o or_o better_a for_o our_o unity_n as_o you_o because_o all_o man_n be_v willing_a to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o scripture_n which_o be_v agree_v on_o all_o side_n to_o be_v infallible_a if_o you_o say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v know_v what_o scripture_n determine_v but_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o what_o the_o church_n define_v it_o be_v easy_o answer_v that_o the_o event_n show_v it_o to_o be_v far_o otherwise_o for_o how_o many_o dispute_n be_v there_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n &_o c_o conclude_v thus_o so_o that_o upon_o the_o whole_a it_o appear_v set_v aside_o force_n and_o fraud_n which_o be_v excellent_a principle_n of_o christian_a unity_n we_o be_v upon_o as_o fair_a term_n of_o union_n as_o you_o be_v among_o yourselves_o where_o do_v he_o not_o say_v this_o in_o effect_n that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v know_v and_o its_o authority_n grant_v infallible_a as_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v by_o its_o subject_n yet_o we_o can_v no_o more_o know_v what_o this_o church_n define_v suppose_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o england_n define_v concern_v transubstantiation_n st-invocation_n sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n etc._n etc._n than_o what_o scripture_n determine_v concern_v these_o point_n and_o that_o canon_n catechism_n etc._n etc._n authorize_v by_o a_o church_n can_v no_o further_o clear_v any_o point_n to_o we_o than_o scripture_n do_v former_o and_o that_o only_o the_o church_n be_v so_o unfortunate_a in_o her_o public_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n that_o her_o exposition_n be_v no_o plain_o than_o the_o text_n and_o that_o only_a force_n or_o fraud_n unite_v her_o subject_n in_o their_o opinion_n and_o if_o so_o what_o fault_n have_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n make_v in_o its_o new_a definition_n if_o after_o these_o it_o seem_v 102._o seem_v stillingf_n p._n 102._o there_o be_v as_o much_o division_n and_o then_o liberty_n also_o of_o opinion_n as_o be_v before_o they_o why_o do_v they_o accuse_v its_o decree_n as_o plain_a enough_o but_o erroneous_a and_o not_o invalidate_v they_o rather_o as_o dubious_a and_o uncertain_a why_o dispute_v they_o not_o whether_o these_o we_o have_v now_o extant_a be_v its_o genuine_a act_n will_v it_o not_o be_v advantageous_a to_o the_o reform_a to_o show_v that_o this_o council_n make_v nothing_o against_o they_o in_o such_o unreasonable_a contest_v have_v mr._n chillingworth_n by_o invent_v many_o captious_a question_n to_o weaken_v church-authority_n engage_v his_o follower_n as_o if_o though_o catholic_n allow_v several_a thing_n in_o council_n obscure_o deliver_v some_o proceed_n in_o some_o thing_n unjust_a the_o legality_n of_o some_o council_n dispute_v &c_n &c_n yet_o there_o can_v not_o remain_v still_o enough_o clear_a and_o unquestionable_a both_o of_o council_n and_o their_o canon_n both_o *_o to_n establish_v the_o most_o illiterate_a subject_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o such_o as_o be_v think_v necessary_a faith_n who_o obligation_n be_v not_o to_o believe_v all_o thing_n define_v but_o all_o thing_n sufficient_o propose_v to_o they_o to_o be_v so_o and_o *_o to_n overthrow_v the_o past_a reformation_n the_o three_o discourse_n chap._n i._n roman-catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v 1._o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v god_n word_n §_o 1._o 2._o that_o in_o these_o scripture_n agree_v on_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v that_o the_o church_n in_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o necessary_n §_o 2._o 3._o that_o the_o church-catholick_n be_v contra-distinct_a to_o heretical_a and_o schismatical_a church_n §_o 4._o 4._o that_o christ_n have_v leave_v in_o this_o church_n pastor_n and_o teacher_n to_o keep_v it_o from_o be_v toss_v to_o and_o fro_o and_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n §_o 5._o §_o 1_o one_a both_o roman_a catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v agree_v that_o there_o be_v sufficient_a certainty_n in_o the_o general_n tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n descend_v to_o the_o present_a age_n that_o the_o bible_n or_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2_o they_o be_v agree_v that_o it_o be_v clear_o declare_v in_o these_o scripture_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n §_o 2_o in_o no_o age_n shall_v err_v in_o credend_n or_o practical_n necessary_a for_o obtain_v salvation_n from_o which_o christian_n seem_v to_o be_v secure_v that_o in_o their_o approve_v §_o 3_o and_o conform_v to_o what_o be_v grant_v general_o to_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o church-catholick_n of_o any_o age_n whatsoever_o they_o shall_v incur_v no_o error_n or_o practice_n destructive_a of_o salvation_n whereas_o a_o hazard_n herein_o may_v be_v in_o their_o depart_n from_o the_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n or_o of_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n of_o any_o age_n all_o or_o some_o of_o which_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n §_o 4_o 3_o
promise_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o err_v or_o misguide_v the_o church_n subject_n in_o necessary_n §_o 6_o 7_o i_o mean_v necessary_n take_v in_o the_o sense_n above_o explain_v 2_o disc_n §_o 9_o and_o next_o because_o what_o or_o how_o much_o be_v to_o be_v account_v thus_o necessary_a the_o judgement_n of_o this_o belong_v also_o to_o these_o church-governor_n not_o their_o subject_n as_o be_v show_v before_o 2._o disc_n §_o 6_o 7._o chap._n iii_o r._n catholic_n proceed_n to_o affirm_v 11._o that_o all_o person_n dissent_v from_o and_o oppose_v any_o know_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v heretic_n §_o 16._o 12._o all_o person_n separate_v on_o what_o pretence_n soever_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n schismatic_n §_o 20._o but_o yet_o that_o difference_n of_o opinion_n or_o practice_n between_o coordinate_a church_n may_v be_v without_o heresy_n or_o schism_n on_o any_o side_n where_o no_o obligation_n to_o these_o lie_v on_o both_o from_o their_o common_a superior_n or_o from_o the_o whole_a §_o 23._o §_o 16_o 11ly_n touch_v the_o two_o great_a crime_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n divide_v such_o person_n or_o church_n as_o be_v guilty_a thereof_o from_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o communion_n see_v before_o prop._n 3._o §_o 4._o one_a for_o heresy_n the_o catholic_n affirm_v that_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n that_o maintain_v or_o hold_v the_o contrary_a to_o any_o to_o he_o made-known_a definition_n pass_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n of_o any_o lawful_a general_n council_n i._n e._n of_o those_o council_n that_o be_v accept_v by_o the_o church-catholick_n in_o the_o sense_n mention_v before_o 12._o before_o see_v §._o 12._o as_o such_o be_v heretical_a not_o meddle_v here_o whether_o some_o other_o also_o beside_o these_o for_o the_o oppose_a some_o doctrine_n clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o general_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n and_o such_o as_o be_v by_o all_o explicit_o to_o be_v belive_v may_v be_v call_v so_o 2ly_n they_o affirm_v that_o those_o may_v become_v heretic_n in_o hold_v a_o error_n in_o the_o faith_n after_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o such_o a_o point_n who_o be_v not_o so_o before_z §_o 17_o where_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o certain_a judgement_n of_o heresy_n be_v make_v not_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o scripture_n but_o of_o the_o church_n and_o why_o all_o hold_n of_o the_o contrary_a to_o such_o definition_n know_v be_v pronounce_v heresy_n though_o sometime_o the_o same_o error_n before_o it_o be_v not_o so_o be_v because_o no_o error_n in_o faith_n can_v be_v judge_v heresy_n but_o where_o there_o appear_v some_o obstinacy_n and_o contumacy_n join_v thereto_o neither_o can_v such_o obstinacy_n and_o contumacy_n appear_v especial_o as_o to_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n from_o the_o scripture_n because_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o to_o some_o matter_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v as_o to_o some_o person_n ambiguous_a and_o not_o clear_a but_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n or_o her_o general_a council_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n the_o supreme_a expositor_n and_o interpreter_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v any_o way_n doubtful_a and_o dispute_v be_v so_o clear_a as_o that_o any_o rational_a or_o disinterest_v person_n to_o who_o it_o and_o the_o authority_n deliver_v it_o and_o the_o divine_a assistance_n of_o that_o authority_n be_v propose_v according_a to_o the_o evidence_n producible_a for_o they_o can_v neither_o deny_v her_o just_a authority_n over_o he_o nor_o her_o veracity_n and_o her_o exposition_n of_o scripture_n clear_o against_o he_o who_o yet_o can_v see_v or_o at_o least_o have_v not_o the_o same_o cogent_a evidence_n to_o acknowledge_v the_o scripture_n in_o such_o point_n to_o be_v so_o and_o so_o such_o person_n will_v thenceforth_o become_v in_o this_o sense_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o self-convinced_n and_o if_o other_o happen_v by_o their_o contract_a fault_n not_o to_o be_v so_o their_o guilt_n in_o general_a at_o least_o be_v not_o lessen_v but_o aggravate_v thereby_o 3.10_o tit._n 3.10_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n write_v to_o bishop_n titus_n that_o after_o a_o second_o admonition_n he_o shall_v reject_v a_o man_n heretical_a or_o still_o adhere_v to_o his_o own_o opinion_n know_v that_o such_o a_o one_o sin_v be_v self-condemned_n viz._n that_o he_o disobey_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v which_o church_n he_o either_o have_v or_o may_v have_v sufficient_a evidence_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v her_o and_o our_o lord_n command_v that_o he_o who_o in_o matter_n controvert_v refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n shall_v be_v withdraw_v from_o by_o the_o christian_a as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n be_v by_o the_o jew_n thus_o it_o seem_v by_o these_o text_n be_v heresy_n know_v and_o heretic_n to_o be_v reject_v §_o 18_o and_o the_o father_n also_o be_v frequent_a in_o declare_v those_o to_o be_v heretic_n who_o after_o the_o church_n definition_n continue_v to_o retain_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a thereto_o whereas_o themselves_o or_o other_o in_o hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n before_o such_o definition_n be_v not_o so_o thus_o st._n austin_n 51._o austin_n de_fw-fr civ_o dei_fw-la l._n 18._o c._n 51._o qui_fw-la in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la christi_fw-la morbidum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la pravumque_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la si_fw-la correpti_fw-la i_o by_o the_o church_n ut_fw-la sanum_fw-la rectumque_fw-la sapiant_fw-la resistunt_fw-la contumaciter_fw-la suaque_fw-la mortifera_fw-la &_o pestifera_fw-la dogmata_fw-la emendare_fw-la nolunt_fw-la sed_fw-la defensare_fw-la persistunt_fw-la haeretici_fw-la fiunt_fw-la it_o seem_v one_o holding_z dogma_fw-la pestiferum_fw-la &_o mortiferum_fw-la before_o the_o church_n corr●ption_n may_v be_v no_o heretic_n who_o yet_o be_v so_o after_o it_o and_o elsewhere_o of_o the_o donatist_n he_o say_v haeresibus_fw-la say_v de_fw-fr haeresibus_fw-la post_fw-la causam_fw-la cum_fw-la eo_fw-la caeciliano_n dictam_fw-la atque_fw-la finitam_fw-la falsitatis_fw-la rei_fw-la deprehensi_fw-la pertinaci_fw-la dissentione_fw-la firmatâ_fw-la in_fw-la haeresim_fw-la schisma_fw-la verterunt_fw-la tanquam_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la propter_fw-la crimina_fw-la caeciliani_n detoto_fw-la terrarum_fw-la orbe_fw-la perierit_fw-la audent_fw-la etiam_fw-la rebaptizare_fw-la catholicos_fw-la ubi_fw-la se_fw-la amplius_fw-la haereticos_fw-la esse_fw-la firmarunt_fw-la cum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la catholicae_fw-la universae_fw-la placuerit_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o ipsis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la baptisma_fw-la common_a rescindere_fw-la where_o observe_v that_o they_o be_v charge_v by_o this_o father_n for_o heresy_n which_o hereticalness_n of_o they_o protestant_n will_v fain_o divert_v to_o other_o matter_n in_o the_o point_n of_o rebaptisation_n and_o that_o because_o this_o point_n now_o settle_v by_o the_o church_n and_o so_o vincent_n lirinen_n 11._o lirinen_n c._n 11._o o_fw-la rerum_fw-la mira_fw-la conuersio_fw-la auctores_fw-la ejusdem_fw-la opinionis_fw-la catholici_fw-la consectatores_fw-la vero_fw-la haeretici_fw-la judicantur_fw-la absolvuntur_fw-la magistri_fw-la condemnantur_fw-la discipuli_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o wonder_n here_o be_v that_o in_o hold_v the_o self_n same_n opinion_n the_o one_o be_v not_o heretic_n the_o other_o be_v i._n e._n after_o a_o general_n council_n have_v condemn_v the_o tenent_n again_o st._n austin_n haeresibus_fw-la austin_n d._n haeresibus_fw-la give_v quod-vult-deus_a for_o avoid_v heresy_n this_o general_a rule_n scire_fw-la sufficit_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la contra_fw-la aliquid_fw-la sentire_fw-la ut_fw-la illud_fw-la non_fw-la recipiamus_fw-la in_o fidem_fw-la it_o seem_v this_o be_v a_o principle_n with_o the_o father_n nihil_fw-la recipiendum_fw-la in_o fidem_fw-la or_o credendam_fw-la contra_fw-la quod_fw-la sentit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la and_o we_o know_v what_o follow_v credendum_fw-la quod_fw-la sentit_fw-la where_o the_o contrary_n be_v immediate_a &_o sublato_fw-la uno_fw-la ponitur_fw-la alterum_fw-la but_o this_o latter_a also_o be_v express_o say_v by_o he_o 118._o he_o epist_n 118._o si_fw-la quid_fw-la horum_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la frequentat_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la hoc_fw-la quin_fw-la ita_fw-la faciendum_fw-la sit_fw-la disputare_fw-la insolentissimae_fw-la insaniae_fw-la est_fw-la this_o concern_v do_v and_o than_o it_o hold_v also_o for_o believe_v the_o church_n faith_n be_v if_o either_o more_o sure_a than_o her_o practice_n but_o for_o believe_v too_o he_o say_v 18._o say_v de_fw-fr bapt._n l._n 1._o c._n 18._o restat_fw-la ut_fw-la hoc_fw-la credamus_fw-la quod_fw-la universa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la a_o sacrilegio_fw-la schismatis_fw-la remota_fw-la custodit_fw-la and_o quod_fw-la in_o hac_fw-la re_fw-la sentiendum_fw-la est_fw-la plenioris_fw-la concilii_fw-la sententiâ_fw-la totius_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la consensio_fw-la confirmat_fw-la therefore_o after_o the_o church_n definition_n he_o say_v one_o in_o hold_v the_o contrary_a than_o first_o become_v a_o heretic_n when_o he_o know_v or_o by_o his_o fault_n be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o church_n have_v define_v it_o see_v the_o baptism_n contra_fw-la donat._n l._n 4._o c._n 16._o constituamus_fw-la ergo_fw-la say_v he_o dvos_fw-la aliquos_fw-la isto_fw-la modo_fw-la unum_fw-la eorum_fw-la
no_o agreement_n or_o union_n from_o the_o common_a superior_n of_o they_o both_o and_o so_o long_o as_o one_o part_n divide_v not_o from_o the_o other_o in_o any_o thing_n wherein_o the_o other_o agree_v with_o the_o whole_a against_o it_o or_o which_o the_o whole_a enjoin_v both_o to_o the_o other_o and_o it_o but_o in_o such_o case_n the_o division_n of_o this_o part_n be_v as_o from_o the_o other_o part_n so_o from_o the_o who_o and_o so_o become_v for_o its_o division_n from_o the_o whole_a and_o not_o from_o the_o other_o part_n schismatical_a 2_o lie_n they_o grant_v also_o that_o one_o part_n may_v lawful_o and_o without_o schism_n separate_a or_o rather_o absent_v itself_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o another_o so_o often_o as_o either_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o other_o part_n suspect_v of_o heresiae_fw-la or_o schism_n before_o any_o evidence_n of_o the_o contrary_n be_v think_v unlawful_a or_o as_o this_o part_n require_v some_o condition_n of_o its_o external_a communion_n to_o which_o the_o other_o be_v not_o by_o the_o whole_a or_o by_o the_o superior_n of_o both_o any_o way_n oblige_v thus_o the_o catholic_n chap._n iu._n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o protestant_n after_o the_o four_o first_o proposition_n concede_v thus_o proceed_v to_o qualify_v they_o 5._o in_o their_o grant_v the_o catholic_n church_n unerrable_a in_o necessary_n understand_v thereby_o only_o such_o few_o point_n without_o which_o salvation_n no_o way_n attainable_a §_o 24._o 6._o affirm_v the_o church_n catholic_n or_o all_o particular_a church_n of_o some_o one_o age_n or_o age_n errable_a in_o several_a other_o doctrine_n dangerous_a to_o salvation_n gross_a damnable_a etc._n etc._n §_o 25._o because_o it_o appear_v that_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a point_n from_o which_o protestant_n dissent_v be_v the_o general_a tenant_n and_o practice_n at_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n §_o 26._o 7.8_o affirm_v *_o the_o church_n general_n council_n also_o when_o universal_o accept_v to_o be_v unerring_a in_o necessary_n but_o not_o so_o in_o other_o and_o that_o be_v in_o the_o most_o point_n and_o in_o the_o former_a 1_o extend_v universal_a acceptation_n to_o all_o particular_a church_n and_o 2_o restrain_v necessary_n as_o before_o to_o those_o absolute_o so_o again_o *_o the_o council_n not_o so_o accept_v to_o be_v errable_a also_o in_o necessary_n §_o 34.35_o 36._o 9.10_o allow_v obedience_n also_o due_a to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n but_o not_o that_o of_o assent_n but_o only_o of_o noncontradiction_n §_o 39_o where_o of_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o obedience_n yield_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o the_o four_o first_o council_n §_o 40._o 11._o of_o non_fw-fr contradiction_n not_o general_o but_o where_o the_o error_n of_o the_o council_n not_o manifest_a and_o intolerable_a §_o 43._o claim_v also_o where_o the_o error_n manifest_a a_o power_n against_o such_o council_n to_o reform_v it_o for_o themselves_o §_o 44._o 12._o the_o judgement_n also_o as_o for_o themselves_o when_o there_o be_v or_o be_v not_o such_o error_n in_o council_n leave_v to_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n §_o 47._o §_o 24_o but_o the_o protestant_n after_o concede_v the_o four_o first_o proposition_n labour_v to_o pull_v down_o these_o superstructure_n of_o the_o catholic_n which_o they_o see_v else_o will_v ruin_v their_o cause_n and_o thus_o proceed_v after_o the_o first_o four_o proposition_n above_o agree_v on_o 5_o lie_n they_o explain_v themselves_o that_o by_o the_o necessary_n wherein_o prop._n 2_o they_o grant_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o all_o age_n unerrable_a they_o understand_v only_o those_o few_o point_n speak_v of_o before_o disc_n 2._o prop._n 6._o without_o the_o explicit_a belief_n of_o which_o salvation_n be_v not_o at_o all_o attainable_a for_o in_o their_o say_n that_o she_o be_v so_o unerrable_a they_o thus_o declare_v themselves_o that_o there_o always_o shall_v be_v a_o number_n of_o man_n profess_v christianity_n in_o the_o world_n so_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 251._o stillingfleet_n stillingf_n p._n 251._o a_o company_n of_o man_n that_o profess_v at_o least_o so_o much_o truth_n as_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o their_o salvation_n so_o mr._n chillingworth_n 15._o chillingworth_n p._n 15._o that_o christ_n do_v and_o will_v so_o defend_v his_o church_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v forever_o till_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n a_o church_n christian_n on_o the_o earth_n so_o dr._n hammond_n 23._o hammond_n defence_n of_o lord_n fulkland_n c._n 1._o §._o 5.6_o p._n 23._o no_o more_o inerrability_n in_o faith_n you_o see_v here_o affirm_v than_o that_o without_o which_o salvation_n be_v absolute_o on_o what_o term_n soever_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o christianity_n not_o attainable_a wherein_o they_o straiten_v christ_n promise_n as_o the_o catholic_n enlarge_v they_o by_o which_o they_o gain_v the_o liberty_n of_o reform_v as_o they_o think_v fit_a from_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o god_n as_o to_o some_o age_n or_o age_n in_o most_o of_o her_o doctrine_n as_o they_o grant_v she_o not_o save_v in_o some_o few_o necessary_n unerrable_a that_o may_v as_o it_o be_v still_o preserve_v life_n in_o she_o neither_o will_v they_o concern_v this_o question_n what_o be_v point_n necessary_a wherein_o our_o lord_n have_v promise_v a_o indefectibility_n to_o his_o church_n what_o not_o by_o any_o mean_n stand_v to_o her_o judgement_n §_o 25_o 6_o lie_n they_o say_v ‖_o that_o though_o the_o church-catholick_n be_v preserve_v always_o from_o error_n in_o absolute_a necessary_n take_v in_o their_o sense_n §_o 24_o for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v cease_v to_o be_v a_o church_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n yet_o the_o same_o church_n or_o at_o least_o any_o or_o all_o particular_a church_n of_o some_o age_n or_o age_n some_o one_o or_o many_o or_o all_o which_o particular_a church_n must_v be_v the_o visible_a universal_a church-catholick_n of_o that_o age_n or_o age_n may_v general_o hold_v and_o the_o governor_n thereof_o impose_v upon_o their_o subject_n such_o error_n and_o corruption_n as_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n gross_a damnable_a etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o which_o upon_o a_o general_a reformation_n neglect_v be_v corrigible_a and_o reformable_a by_o any_o particular_a church_n for_o itself_o see_v what_o archbishop_n laud_n §_o 26_o §_o 37._o n._n 5.6_o mr._n stillingfleet_n part_v 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 330._o and_z c._n 4._o p._n 370.371_o and_z c._n 8._o p._n 478_o 479._o mr._n chillingworth_n c._n 5._o §_o 64.49_o 45_o 27._o and_o the_o 31_o st_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v say_v to_o this_o purpose_n §_o 27_o and_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o assertion_n seem_v to_o be_v because_o these_o great_a point_n of_o modern_a controversy_n §_o 28_o 1._o a_o corporal_a presence_n and_o a_o transubstantiation_n or_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o element_n into_o christ_n body_n §_o 29_o 2._o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i._n e._n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n as_o present_v in_o it_o which_o follow_v from_o the_o former_a §_o 30_o 3._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n not_o only_o that_o of_o prayer_n praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n nor_o only_o of_o the_o mystery_n in_o the_o consecrate_v of_o they_o offer_v as_o a_o commemorative_n of_o the_o passion_n a_o thing_n concede_v also_o by_o learned_a protestant_n but_o also_o of_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o these_o mystery_n which_o thing_n follow_v from_o the_o first_o point_n offer_v in_o this_o service_n pro_fw-la vivis_fw-la &_o defunctis_fw-la etc._n etc._n 4._o invocation_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o saint_n §_o 31_o and_o 5._o such_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a as_o infer_v their_o present_a condition_n before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n whatever_o their_o restraint_n or_o suffering_n be_v to_o be_v conceive_v better_o able_a by_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o live_n do_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v universal_o hold_v and_o practise_v and_o the_o approbation_n and_o conformity_n to_o they_o impose_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n both_o of_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n at_o the_o come_n of_o luther_n §_o 32_o the_o clearning_n of_o which_o because_o it_o be_v a_o consideration_n of_o great_a importance_n and_o not_o meet_v to_o be_v omit_v nor_o can_v be_v here_o insert_v without_o make_v too_o great_a a_o parenthesis_n and_o distract_n your_o thought_n from_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n i_o have_v rather_o choose_v to_o annex_v it_o at_o the_o end_n of_o this_o discourse_n cap._n 11._o §_o 158._o refer_v you_o to_o that_o place_n for_o the_o perusal_n thereof_o if_o not_o in_o this_o matter_n already_o satisfy_v §_o 33_o this_o then_o concern_v the_o 6_o the_o proposition_n the_o protestant_n affirm_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o some_o age_n may_v incur_v and_o maintain_v dangerous_a
to_o be_v true_a and_o we_o be_v convince_v of_o it_o in_o some_o other_o sort_n than_o by_o the_o bare_a determination_n of_o the_o council_n only_o but_o it_o suffice_v that_o we_o be_v ready_a express_o to_o believe_v it_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v make_v to_o appear_v unto_o we_o see_v dr._n hammond_n of_o heresy_n p._n 96._o '_o it_o be_v hence_o manifest_a also_o what_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o reverence_n that_o be_v by_o all_o sober_a christian_n deem_v due_a and_o pay_v to_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n because_o one_a they_o set_v down_o and_o convince_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n 2_o because_o they_o be_v so_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v more_o easy_o be_v fetch_v from_o those_o man_n and_o church_n to_o who_o they_o have_v commit_v it_o thus_o he_o though_o beside_o that_o the_o first_o of_o these_o council_n be_v almost_o at_o 300._o year_n distance_n the_o reason_n of_o obedience_n to_o church_n governor_n give_v by_o doctor_n hammond_n elsewhere_o 903._o elsewhere_o of_o fundamental_o p._n 903._o viz._n '_o because_o christ_n speak_v to_o we_o in_o those_o governor_n as_o his_o immediate_a successor_n in_o the_o prophetic_a pastoral_n episcopal_a office_n infer_v that_o the_o church_n authority_n in_o all_o age_n be_v equal_o valid_a and_o so_o void_v this_o reason_n he_o go_v on_o three_o because_o the_o great_a fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v the_o matter_n of_o their_o definition_n yet_o he_o say_v see_v disc_n 1._o §_o 6._o that_o general_a council_n be_v no_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o and_o 115._o and_o of_o heresy_n p._n 115._o that_o it_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o the_o apostolicalness_n of_o they_o and_o the_o force_n of_o the_o testification_n whereby_o they_o be_v approve_v and_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o which_o give_v the_o authority_n to_o the_o council_n and_o nothing_o else_o be_v sufficient_a where_o that_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v see_v mr._n chillingw_o p._n 118._o dr._n potter_n 2._o §._o 41._o n._n 2._o together_o with_o the_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n attribute_v to_o the_o church_n nay_o to_o particular_a church_n and_o i_o subscribe_v to_o his_o opinion_n a_o authority_n of_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o plain_a and_o evident_a scripture_n and_o universal_a tradition_n and_o infallibility_n whilst_o they_o proceed_v according_a to_o this_o rule_n and_o p._n 200._o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o in_o aftertime_n i._n e._n after_o the_o apostle_n might_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o declare_v their_o judgement_n touch_v the_o sense_n of_o some_o general_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n but_o to_o oblige_v other_o to_o receive_v their_o declaration_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n what_o warrant_v they_o have_v i_o know_v not_o he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o that_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n be_v to_o have_v this_o authority_n or_o that_o it_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n for_o some_o age_n and_o then_o expire_v he_o that_o can_v show_v either_o of_o these_o thing_n let_v he_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v yet_o i_o willing_o confess_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o council_n though_o not_o infallible_a be_v yet_o so_o far_o directive_n and_o oblige_v that_o without_o apparent_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a it_o may_v be_v sin_n to_o reject_v it_o at_o least_o not_o to_o afford_v it_o a_o outward_a submission_n for_o public_a peace_n sake_n see_v mr._n whitby_n p._n 92._o we_o do_v appeal_v to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n not_o because_o we_o believe_v they_o infallible_a but_o because_o we_o conceive_v they_o to_o agree_v with_o scripture_n which_o be_v infallible_a so_o that_o we_o make_v they_o secondary_a not_o primary_n guide_n we_o resolve_v not_o our_o belief_n of_o their_o decree_n into_o their_o authority_n but_o into_o their_o agreement_n with_o scripture_n we_o do_v not_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v this_o or_o that_o because_o any_o one_o of_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n have_v define_v it_o but_o because_o what_o the_o council_n have_v define_v be_v evident_a in_o scripture_n therefore_o do_v we_o believe_v it_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o any_o article_n they_o dissent_v from_o scripture_n we_o shall_v in_o that_o as_o much_o oppose_v they_o as_o we_o do_v you_o and_z p._n 451._o i_o answer_v with_o dr_n taylor_n that_o either_o these_o council_n be_v tie_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n or_o not_o if_o the_o first_o then_o be_v they_o to_o be_v examine_v by_o it_o and_o to_o be_v follow_v no_o further_o than_o they_o adhere_v to_o this_o unerring_a rule_n examine_v he_o mean_v by_o those_o person_n who_o yet_o these_o council_n be_v to_o teach_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_z p._n 15._o we_o general_o acknowledge_v that_o no_o authority_n on_o earth_n oblige_v to_o internal_a assent_n this_o the_o firm_a ground_n i._n e._n his_o own_o judgement_n what_o conciliary_a decree_n agree_v or_o disagree_v with_o scripture_n that_o this_o young_a man_n build_v on_o for_o the_o confute_v of_o mr._n cressy_n book_n see_v mr._n stillingfleet_n p._n 58._o 59_o 133_o 154_o 252._o and_o 375.517_o compare_v there_o he_o say_v on_o one_o side_n p._n 375._o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n look_v on_o it_o as_o her_o duty_n to_o keep_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o four_o general_a council_n and_o we_o profess_v say_v he_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o interpret_v by_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n and_o p._n 56._o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n admit_v not_o any_o thing_n to_o be_v deliver_v as_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n here_o he_o seem_v to_o acknowledge_v a_o submission_n of_o protestant_n to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o four_o first_o age_n and_o to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o their_o guide_n for_o what_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o i_o no_o way_n to_o consist_v with_o a_o profession_n of_o submit_v to_o the_o same_o church_n or_o her_o council_n only_o when_o or_o as_o far_o as_o they_o agree_v in_o their_o decree_n with_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o last_o imply_v that_o i_o learn_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n not_o from_o they_o but_o another_o and_o assent_n to_o they_o where_o they_o conform_v to_o that_o judgement_n of_o which_o i_o learn_v it_o ibid_fw-la he_o have_v these_o two_o proposition_n 2_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a prescription_n against_o any_o thing_n that_o can_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o it_o appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o this_o 2_o that_o such_o doctrine_n may_v well_o be_v judge_v destructive_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o unanimous_o condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n within_o that_o time_n where_v he_o allow_v not_o christian_n to_o try_v and_o so_o assent_v to_o or_o dissent_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n by_o what_o appear_v to_o they_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o refer_v they_o to_o learn_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o decree_n of_o these_o first_o council_n but_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o contend_v how_o consistent_o i_o leave_v to_o the_o reader_n judgement_n that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o pretend_v to_o be_v any_o infallible_a rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o p._n 17._o concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n he_o say_v it_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a to_o imagine_v that_o the_o chcurch_n of_o england_n do_v own_o that_o necessity_n pure_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o church_n definition_n of_o those_o thing_n therein_o which_o be_v not_o fundamental_a it_o be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o her_o sense_n in_o her_o 19_o and_o 20_o article_n and_o that_o hence_o the_o suppose_a necessity_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o article_n of_o this_o creed_n must_v accord_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v resolve_v either_o into_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o matter_n or_o into_o that_o necessity_n which_o suppose_v clear_a conviction_n that_o the_o thing_n therein_o contain_v be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o p._n 133._o he_o describe_v the_o catholic_n church_n a_o society_n of_o such_o person_n who_o all_o firm_o believe_v that_o doctrine_n infallible_a which_o christ_n deliver_v but_o yet_o judge_v themselves_o all_o fallible_a and_o dare_v not_o usurp_v that_o royal_a prerogative_n of_o heaven_n in_o prescribe_v infallible_o in_o matter_n question_v but_o leave_v all_o man_n to_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o pandect_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n because_o each_o member_n of_o this_o society_n be_v bind_v to_o take_v care_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o tend_v thereto_o thus_o he_o and_o general_o protestant_n hold_v that_o the_o church-catholick_n diffusive_a of_o all_o age_n and_o therefore_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o
chillingw_o 59_o chillingw_o p._n 59_o if_o through_o his_o own_o default_n any_o man_n judge_v amiss_o he_o alone_o shall_v suffer_v for_o it_o and_o such_o person_n endanger_v both_o his_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a happiness_n 100_o happiness_n p._n 100_o well_o for_o such_o person_n at_o their_o peril_n be_v it_o §_o 50_o but_o meanwhile_o how_o be_v the_o church_n peace_n or_o her_o wholesome_a or_o also_o necessary_a and_o fundamental_a doctrine_n to_o be_v preserve_v among_o her_o subject_n how_o these_o poor_a sheep_n deliver_v from_o harken_v to_o and_o be_v seduce_v by_o these_o new_a demonstrator_n if_o such_o public_a contradictor_n may_v not_o just_o be_v punish_v and_o restrain_v by_o she_o or_o how_o may_v they_o just_o be_v restrain_v if_o all_o aught_o to_o be_v leave_v to_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o pandect_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n because_o each_o member_n of_o the_o christian_a society_n be_v bind_v take_v care_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o tend_v thereto_o as_o mr._n stillingfleet_n tell_v we_o 133._o we_o p._n 133._o how_o restrain_v i_o mean_v even_o as_o to_o external_a obedience_n or_o silence_n if_o the_o judgement_n when_o or_o in_o what_o thing_n her_o council_n intolerable_o err_v be_v right_o leave_v to_o they_o and_o if_o so_o often_o as_o they_o judge_v they_o to_o err_v and_o persuade_v themselves_o they_o have_v demonstration_n for_o it_o they_o may_v lawful_o contradict_v can_v the_o church-governor_n just_o punish_v luther_n and_o he_o just_o do_v that_o for_o which_o he_o be_v punish_v well_o to_o give_v some_o satisfaction_n also_o to_o this_o the_o preserve_n of_o the_o church_n peace_n thus_o go_v on_o mr._n stillingfleet_n we_o appeal_v say_v he_o 340._o he_o p._n 340._o to_o the_o common_a reason_n of_o mankind_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o far_o probable_a way_n to_o end_v controversy_n to_o persuade_v they_o in_o disputable_a matter_n to_o yield_v external_a obedience_n to_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n than_o to_o tell_v they_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v whatever_o they_o decree_v to_o be_v infallible_o true_a but_o here_o he_o hide_v and_o nimble_o pass_v over_o one_o half_a and_o the_o more_o scandalous_a part_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o that_o which_o usher_v in_o the_o reformation_n that_o where_o a_o doctrine_n of_o a_o general_n council_n be_v intolerable_a where_o it_o seem_v to_o any_o not_o a_o matter_n disputable_a but_o error_n manifest_a of_o which_o he_o know_v who_o must_v judge_v and_o how_o many_o of_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n before_o the_o time_n of_o luther_n be_v by_o protestant_n charge_v to_o be_v so_o so_o that_o such_o error_n be_v not_o to_o be_v number_v among_o the_o raro_fw-la contigentia_fw-la 535._o contigentia_fw-la see_v mr._n stillingfl_fw-mi p._n 535._o so_o often_o private_a man_n or_o particular_a church_n instead_o of_o yield_v the_o external_a obedience_n he_o here_o make_v show_v of_o may_v public_o contradict_v such_o council_n and_o reform_v i_o say_v not_o without_o they_o for_o that_o protestant_n 153._o protestant_n ap._n laud_n p._n 153._o do_v bring_v several_a proof_n or_o example_n in_o antiquity_n but_o against_o they_o for_o which_o they_o bring_v none_o chap._n v._n 13._o suitable_o to_o the_o precedent_n protestant_n declare_v heresy_n to_o be_v a_o error_n obstinate_o maintain_v against_o some_o fundamental_a article_n of_o the_o faith_n without_o allow_v any_o certain_a judge_n what_o article_n be_v fundamental_a and_o consequent_o what_o be_v heresy_n §_o 51._o 14._o declare_v schism_n in_o respect_n of_o inferior_n to_o be_v a_o separation_n causeless_a §_o 55._o or_o also_o as_o some_o more_o straiten_v it_o a_o separation_n in_o essential_o §_o 57_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o other_o church_n or_o of_o the_o church-catholick_n but_o leave_v we_o no_o certain_a judge_n what_o point_n be_v essential_o or_o when_o the_o separation_n causeless_a and_o consequent_o when_o schism_n unless_o perhaps_o he_o that_o separate_v be_v make_v by_o they_o this_o judge_n again_o enlarge_n schism_n to_o superior_n also_o so_o often_o as_o by_o require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n they_o give_v their_o subject_n just_a cause_n of_o a_o separation_n §_o 61._o where_o be_v examine_v whether_o the_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n when_o depart_v from_o no_o other_o their_o superior_n can_v become_v in_o respect_n of_o their_o subject_n guilty_a of_o schism_n §_o 63._o n._n 1._o §_o 51_o 13._o la_v concern_v their_o state_v of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n 1_o st_o for_o heresy_n they_o do_v not_o enlarge_v it_o so_o far_o as_o catholic_n do_v 16._o do_v see_v before_o §._o 16._o to_o all_o error_n know_o or_o obstinate_o maintain_v against_o any_o church_n definition_n make_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o which_o help_v to_o remove_v the_o charge_n thereof_o the_o far_a from_o themselves_o restrain_v it_o 11._o it_o chill_n 271.332_o stillingf_n p._n 11._o only_o to_o those_o error_n that_o be_v against_o some_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n or_o some_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n or_o such_o as_o be_v plain_o reveal_v by_o god_n with_o a_o command_n that_o all_o shall_v believe_v it_o 12._o it_o chill_n p._n 332._o §._o 12._o or_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o a_o christian_a and_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n §_o 52_o which_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n they_o will_v not_o allow_v to_o extend_v so_o far_o as_o to_o all_o the_o article_n contain_v in_o some_o of_o the_o creed_n 2._o creed_n see_v before_o §_o 41._o n._n 2._o and_o some_o fetter_v they_o with_o so_o many_o condition_n of_o a_o universal_a attestation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o all_o time_n as_o that_o scarce_o any_o former_a universal_o account_v heresy_n can_v be_v find_v to_o oppose_v a_o divine_a truth_n that_o be_v in_o every_o circumstance_n so_o qualify_v viz._n such_o condition_n as_o these_o 57_o these_o see_v still_o p._n 57_o that_o all_o catholic_n writer_n agree_v in_o such_o a_o doctrine_n and_o none_o of_o they_o opppose_v it_o and_o agree_v in_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o also_o to_o all_o christian_n and_o that_o no_o late_a writer_n and_o father_n in_o heat_n of_o contention_n and_o opposition_n of_o heretic_n judge_v it_o then_o a_o article_n more_o necessary_a than_o it_o be_v judge_v before_o that_o all_o writer_n that_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n deliver_v it_o not_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o such_o as_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o it_o be_v divine_a revelation_n but_o as_o necessary_a also_o to_o be_v by_o all_o explicit_o believe_v that_o what_o all_o these_o writer_n consent_v in_o be_v also_o undoubted_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o those_o age_n wherein_o they_o write_v last_o that_o it_o be_v make_v appear_v to_o be_v universal_o embrace_v at_o all_o time_n and_o all_o place_n by_o the_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o opposer_n thereof_o to_o have_v be_v present_o disow_v as_o any_o member_n of_o it_o somewhat_o a_o like_a caution_n bishop_n taylor_n have_v put_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o dissuasive_a 7._o dissuasive_a c._n 1._o §._o 1._o p._n 7._o to_o secure_a protestant_n from_o receive_v any_o detriment_n to_o their_o cause_n from_o the_o father_n and_o antiquity_n where_o after_o he_o have_v first_o collect_v that_o the_o roman_a tenant_n be_v not_o believe_v or_o practise_v in_o the_o three_o first_o age_n because_o the_o writer_n of_o those_o age_n few_o and_o compendious_a be_v silent_a therein_o which_o be_v a_o faulty_a negative_a argue_v though_o the_o antecedent_n be_v grant_v for_o true_a and_o then_o thus_o prejudicee_v the_o four_o age_n i.e._n the_o time_n of_o athanasius_n basil_n the_o three_o gregory_n chrysostom_n jerome_n ambrose_n austin_n the_o first_o general_n council_n and_o the_o first_o free_a exercise_n of_o religion_n and_o copious_a record_n thereof_o prejudice_v it_o i_o say_v and_o the_o age_n succeed_v that_o in_o those_o time_n secular_a interest_n do_v more_o prevail_v and_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n be_v vast_a and_o voluminous_a full_a of_o controversy_n and_o ambiguous_a sense_n fit_v to_o their_o own_o time_n and_o question_n full_a of_o proper_a opinion_n and_o such_o variety_n of_o say_n that_o both_o side_n eternal_o and_o inconfutable_o shall_v bring_v saying_n for_o themselves_o respective_o after_o such_o prejudices_fw-la i_o say_v he_o add_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o conclude_v from_o the_o say_n of_o a_o number_n of_o the_o father_n that_o their_o doctrine_n which_o they_o will_v prove_v thence_o be_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n because_o say_v he_o any_o number_n that_o be_v less_o than_o all_o do_v not_o prove_v a_o catholic_n consent_n and_o the_o
clear_a say_n of_o one_o or_o two_o of_o these_o father_n true_o allege_v by_o we_o to_o the_o contrary_a will_v certain_o prove_v that_o what_o many_o of_o they_o suppose_v it_o do_v affirm_v and_o which_o but_o two_o or_o three_o as_o good_a catholic_n as_o the_o other_o do_v deny_v be_v not_o then_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o it_o have_v these_o have_v be_v heretic_n account_v and_o will_v not_o have_v remain_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o with_o he_o if_o one_o or_o two_o of_o the_o ancient_n that_o be_v not_o therefore_o at_o that_o time_n account_v heretic_n for_o it_o can_v be_v show_v to_o dissent_v the_o concurrence_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n be_v hold_v not_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v a_o catholic_n doctrine_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n nor_o such_o a_o accord_n of_o they_o sufficient_a to_o be_v call_v a_o catholic_n consent_n or_o such_o as_o that_o all_o maintain_v the_o contrary_a thereof_o after_o it_o be_v declare_v by_o a_o council_n to_o be_v such_o a_o catholic_n doctrine_n will_v be_v heresy_n whereas_o contrary_a it_o be_v manifest_a both_o that_o some_o dissenter_n from_o a_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o faith_n especial_o if_o not_o so_o universal_o evident_a as_o some_o other_o be_v or_o a_o consequential_a that_o be_v in_o those_o time_n not_o so_o much_o consider_v be_v not_o therefore_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n before_o a_o more_o public_a declaration_n and_o clear_n of_o such_o point_n by_o a_o council_n witness_v s._n cyprian_a in_o the_o point_n of_o non_fw-fr rebaptisation_n and_o yet_o that_o the_o doctrine_n may_v be_v true_o call_v catholic_n before_o the_o council_n and_o the_o dissenter_n also_o perhaps_o not_o free_a from_o a_o culpable_a ignorance_n therein_o for_o if_o the_o dissent_n of_o some_o few_o father_n in_o the_o council_n as_o in_o that_o of_o nice_n or_o chalcedon_n hinder_v not_o that_o a_o point_n may_v be_v declare_v then_o a_o catholic_n doctrine_n neither_o do_v the_o dissent_n of_o some_o few_o father_n before_o the_o council_n hinder_v that_o then_o it_o be_v not_o a_o catholic_n doctrine_n but_o to_o return_v to_o mr._n stillingfleet_n such_o condition_n they_o say_v must_v the_o point_n have_v in_o which_o the_o church-catholick_n be_v unerring_a and_o the_o obligation_n to_o believe_v and_o conform_v to_o which_o be_v universal_a and_o the_o opposite_a whereof_o be_v heresy_n which_o condition_n if_o you_o please_v to_o apply_v to_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n oppose_v the_o arrian_n nestorian_a or_o pelagian_a heretic_n you_o shall_v find_v scarce_o any_o of_o they_o but_o that_o the_o opposer_n thereof_o upon_o a_o deficiency_n in_o some_o of_o these_o requisite_n may_v withdraw_v his_o obedience_n thereto_o without_o any_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n but_o 2_o lie_n they_o leave_v we_o also_o still_o uncertain_a which_o or_o how_o many_o these_o fundamental_o or_o necessary_n be_v or_o who_o shall_v judge_v what_o point_n have_v or_o have_v not_o such_o a_o universal_a attestation_n as_o they_o require_v from_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o they_o leave_v we_o also_o uncertain_a what_o be_v or_o be_v not_o heresy_n leave_v we_o also_o uncertain_a by_o who_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n such_o heretic_n may_v be_v restrain_v proceed_v against_o and_o punish_v since_o they_o hold_v council_n no_o certain_a judge_n concern_v these_o point_n what_o be_v necessary_a and_o fundamental_o or_o universal_o attefted_a what_o not_o and_o likewise_o since_o they_o hold_v these_o fundamental_o as_o to_o private_a man_n vary_v according_a to_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o they_o more_o point_n be_v fundamental_a to_o one_o than_o to_o another_o 98.99_o another_o chill_n p._n 137._o still_o p._n 98.99_o and_o consequent_o heresy_n in_o oppose_v they_o vary_v according_o they_o have_v cast_v off_o also_o that_o of_o the_o church_n from_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o any_o one_o conviction_n therein_o §_o 53_o and_o indeed_o if_o 1_o st_z protestant_n maintain_v that_o no_o council_n or_o church_n without_o tyranny_n may_v require_v belief_n or_o internal_a assent_n from_o their_o subject_n to_o their_o definition_n or_o article_n of_o religion_n a_o practice_n much_o exclaim_v against_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o if_o i_o misunderstand_v they_o not_o deny_v to_o be_v lawful_a by_o several_a reform_v and_o 2_o lie_n this_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o hold_v of_o a_o tenent_n contrary_a to_o some_o fundamental_a point_n and_o not_o only_o the_o outward_a profession_n and_o public_a maintain_n of_o such_o a_o tenent_n be_v heresy_n i_o see_v not_o how_o the_o reform_a church_n though_o they_o shall_v declare_v a_o particular_a tenent_n to_o be_v a_o heresy_n yet_o can_v discover_v any_o heretic_n whatever_o unless_o he_o voluntary_o publish_v his_o heresy_n nor_o how_o they_o can_v or_o do_v remove_v any_o such_o out_o of_o their_o communion_n or_o also_o sacred_a order_n if_o 1_o neither_o those_o who_o hold_v such_o heretical_a opinion_n stand_v anathematise_v by_o their_o canon_n nor_o there_o may_v be_v the_o exact_v from_o such_o enter_v into_o order_n a_o confession_n of_o their_o belief_n or_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o any_o internal_a assent_n to_o their_o article_n of_o religion_n both_o which_o for_o such_o point_n be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o if_o it_o be_v maintain_v that_o this_o also_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n or_o at_o least_o this_o of_o england_n why_o be_v the_o require_v of_o such_o assent_n to_o and_o belief_n of_o the_o contrary_a of_o that_o which_o she_o deem_v heresy_n blame_v in_o the_o roman_a §_o 54_o last_o the_o description_n which_o be_v make_v by_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 153._o stillingfleet_n p._n 153._o of_o that_o catholic_n church_n which_o our_o bless_a saviour_n institute_v in_o the_o world_n mention_v before_o §_o 41._o seem_v to_o take_v away_o all_o such_o judge_n upon_o the_o earth_n by_o who_o heresy_n can_v be_v discover_v or_o make_v know_v for_o if_o the_o church-governor_n can_v prescribe_v infallible_o i.e._n infallible_o without_o mistake_n for_o there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o infallible_o here_o signify_v any_o thing_n more_o in_o any_o controversy_n on_o which_o side_n be_v divine_a truth_n but_o that_o man_n be_v to_o be_v leave_v herein_o to_o judge_v for_o themselves_o according_a to_o scripture_n that_o be_v what_o seem_v to_o they_o out_o of_o scripture_n to_o be_v truth_n because_o say_v he_o overy_n one_o be_v bind_v to_o take_v care_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o tend_v thereto_o then_o neither_o can_v the_o father_n of_o nice_a judge_n concern_v the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n a_o thing_n strong_o question_v and_o put_v it_o into_o the_o creed_n nor_o those_o of_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n judge_v so_o concern_v one_o person_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o 2._o nature_n and_o put_v these_o in_o the_o creed_n judge_v i_o say_v so_o as_o that_o other_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o hold_v that_o to_o be_v heresy_n in_o these_o point_n which_o they_o pronounce_v so_o nor_o be_v there_o then_o any_o way_n to_o convince_v the_o arrian_n infallible_o of_o heresy_n but_o that_o they_o be_v still_o to_o be_v leave_v to_o judge_v for_o themselves_o as_o bound_v to_o take_v care_n for_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o tend_v thereto_o the_o same_o may_v be_v say_v much_o more_o concern_v pelagianism_n and_o other_o error_n former_o condemn_v for_o heresy_n which_o do_v express_o oppose_v no_o article_n in_o our_o creed_n by_o this_o way_n then_o a_o ecclesiastical_a restraint_n of_o external_a profession_n there_o may_v be_v but_o none_o of_o belief_n or_o opinion_n nor_o obstinacy_n in_o hold_v they_o where_o no_o obligation_n acknowledge_v to_o hold_v otherwise_o this_o of_o those_o who_o express_a heresy_n as_o a_o obstinate_a error_n against_o some_o fundamental_a or_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n universal_o attest_v such_o by_o the_o church_n in_o the_o manner_n before_o mention_v but_o dr._n hammond_n 70._o hammond_n of_o heresy_n §._o 2.11_o n_o p._n 70._o somewhat_o more_o condescend_v and_o enlarge_a the_o compass_n of_o heresy_n though_o he_o make_v it_o indeed_o to_o be_v a_o opposition_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o any_o one_o or_o more_o branch_n of_o it_o by_o way_n of_o emphasis_n and_o excellence_n that_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saeint_n and_o that_o be_v set_v out_o by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n from_o he_o to_o be_v by_o all_o man_n believe_v to_o their_o righteousness_n and_o confess_v to_o their_o salvation_n and_o a_o opposition_n of_o such_o faith_n say_v he_o 2._o he_o §._o 5._o n._n 2._o as_o descend_v to_o we_o from_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o catholic_n testimony_n true_o such_o i._n e._n universal_o in_o all_o respect_n 1_o of_o place_n 2_o
necessary_a condition_n of_o her_o communion_n upon_o excommunication_n to_o those_o who_o do_v not_o submit_v by_o this_o become_v divide_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n but_o then_o it_o be_v so_o without_o its_o deny_v any_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n its_o crime_n only_o be_v the_o impose_v of_o some_o non-fundamental_a error_n to_o be_v believe_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n 2_o lie_n by_o their_o restriction_n of_o catholic_n doctrine_n to_o those_o only_a which_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v to_o have_v be_v so_o receive_v 1._o §._o 60._o n._n 1._o not_o only_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o present_a but_o also_o of_o all_o former_a age_n from_o the_o apostle_n they_o may_v separate_v from_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n of_o the_o present_a age_n universal_o accept_v without_o any_o guilt_n of_o schism_n or_o oppose_v by_o this_o any_o catholic_n doctrine_n in_o their_o sense_n unless_o they_o will_v say_v such_o council_n can_v define_v or_o the_o present_a age_n universal_o accept_v no_o doctrine_n but_o what_o have_v be_v the_o explicit_a faith_n of_o all_o former_a age_n and_o by_o such_o restriction_n they_o seem_v to_o require_v most_o unequal_a condition_n of_o their_o obedience_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o present_a church-catholick_n when_o they_o will_v allow_v a_o necessity_n of_o such_o conformity_n to_o no_o doctrine_n of_o she_o upon_o any_o cheap_a term_n than_o the_o produce_v a_o write_a evidence_n be_v that_o i_o suppose_v they_o mean_v not_o of_o some_o principle_n thereof_o but_o of_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o for_o it_o in_o all_o age_n for_o 1600_o year_n a_o large_a field_n choose_v wherein_o to_o continue_v the_o dispute_n now_o all_o church-tradition_n be_v not_o necessary_o write_v all_o former_a writing_n not_o necessary_o descend_v to_o the_o present_a age_n and_o so_o many_o doctrine_n may_v be_v universal_a that_o can_v be_v make_v appear_v in_o the_o church-record_n of_o every_o age_n to_o be_v so_o and_o it_o seem_v enough_o to_o infer_v the_o obedience_n of_o inferior_n if_o the_o inferior_n can_v show_v in_o the_o former_a church-record_n the_o contrary_a doctrine_n hold_v in_o any_o age_n to_o that_o maintain_v in_o the_o present_a 3_o lie_n if_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o present_a age_n be_v in_o a_o matter_n necessary_a 2._o §._o 60._o n._n 2._o the_o church_n of_o the_o present_a age_n must_v be_v unerrable_a in_o it_o and_o its_o testimony_n sufficient_a to_o enforce_v a_o conformity_n upon_o pain_n of_o schism_n without_o far_a search_n into_o former_a age_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o every_o age_n be_v unerring_a in_o necessary_n if_o in_o some_o matter_n not_o necessary_a the_o testimony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n except_v the_o apostle_n only_o with_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a which_o as_o they_o say_v may_v mistake_v in_o it_o and_o therefore_o the_o retire_n to_o these_o former_a age_n will_v not_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v it_o a_o truth_n or_o a_o departure_n from_o it_o schism_n but_o if_o they_o say_v in_o the_o testimony_n of_o former_a age_n they_o include_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o apostle_n also_o then_o that_o alone_o will_v be_v sufficient_a to_o authorise_v a_o catholic_n doctrine_n without_o the_o church_n witness_v give_v thereto_o in_o any_o age_n or_o without_o that_o the_o church_n witness_n be_v nothing_o worth_a and_o then_o why_o press_v they_o this_o universal_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n 4._o but_o last_o 3._o §._o 60._o n._n 3._o this_o their_o affirm_v the_o constitution_n and_o essence_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v only_o a_o right_a belief_n in_o fundamental_o and_o allow_v the_o communion_n of_o this_o church_n and_o a_o security_n from_o schism_n to_o all_o such_o person_n and_o church_n as_o be_v in_o these_o fundamental_o no_o way_n deficient_a be_v very_o faulty_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o ordinary_a notion_n which_o both_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o learned_a protestant_n have_v of_o the_o catholic_n communion_n and_o of_o schism_n it_o be_v true_a that_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v a_o company_n of_o right_a believer_n as_o to_o faith_n absolute_o require_v for_o attain_v salvation_n no_o more_o be_v necessary_a to_o its_o constitution_n or_o be_v than_o the_o faith_n only_o of_o some_o point_n which_o for_o this_o reason_n be_v call_v fundamental_o but_o as_o it_o be_v also_o one_o society_n or_o body_n wherein_o the_o several_a member_n be_v unite_v in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n under_o lawful_a pastor_n and_o guide_n and_o subject_v to_o certain_a law_n of_o government_n and_o discipline_n so_o many_o more_o thing_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o plenitude_n of_o faith_n and_o sanctity_n of_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o divine_a revelation_n and_o command_v make_v know_v by_o these_o his_o minister_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v and_o constitution_n thereof_o all_o which_o be_v put_v any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n be_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n but_o any_o of_o they_o want_v though_o the_o rest_n be_v present_a it_o cease_v to_o be_v catholic_n and_o such_o a_o church-catholick_n be_v affirm_v to_o be_v always_o extant_a not_o only_o as_o shall_v believe_v aright_o in_o all_o fundamental_o but_o the_o member_n of_o which_o shall_v always_o be_v unite_v also_o in_o all_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o practice_n of_o holiness_n conduce_v to_o salvation_n and_o the_o subject_n therein_o obedient_a to_o their_o superior_n in_o all_o their_o lawful_a decree_n and_o injunction_n so_o that_o a_o person_n or_o church_n most_o full_o orthodox_n as_o to_o all_o fundamental_a faith_n yet_o may_v want_v some_o essential_o of_o unity_n necessary_a to_o the_o be_v a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n if_o such_o person_n or_o church_n shall_v divide_v from_o the_o communion_n thereof_o for_o any_o lawful_a definition_n make_v or_o practice_n enjoin_v by_o his_o superior_n even_o in_o nonfundamentals_a so_o the_o novatian_a and_o donatist-churche_n perfect_o agree_v with_o the_o catholic_n as_o to_o all_o fundamental_a faith_n yet_o become_v non-catholick_n and_o schismatic_n for_o relinquish_a the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a in_o opposition_n to_o some_o matter_n not_o fundamental_a when_o once_o define_v and_o state_v by_o it_o the_o one_o for_o the_o reception_n into_o the_o church_n of_o great_a sinner_n after_o baptism_n penitent_a the_o other_o for_o non-rebaptizing_a of_o heretic_n convert_v therefore_o of_o these_o late_a s._n austin_n say_v 48._o say_v ep._n 48._o nobiscum_fw-la estis_fw-la in_o baptismo_fw-la in_fw-la symbolo_fw-la in_fw-la caeteris_fw-la dominicis_fw-la sacramentis_fw-la in_o spiritu_fw-la autem_fw-la unitatis_fw-la &_o in_o vinculo_fw-la pacis_fw-la in_fw-la ipsâ_fw-la denique_fw-la catholicâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la non_fw-la estis_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la &_o sacramentis_fw-la they_o agree_v but_o yet_o not_o in_o catholicâ_fw-la ecclesiâ_fw-la because_o not_o in_o spiritu_fw-la unitatis_fw-la &_o vinculo_fw-la pacis_fw-la i._n e._n not_o in_o a_o due_a subordination_n and_o subjection_n as_o to_o some_o other_o universal_a decree_n of_o their_o mother_n the_o catholic_n church_n in_o which_o they_o be_v heretical_a and_o schismatical_a of_o which_o see_v before_o §_o 18._o to_o the_o complete_a be_v and_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n qua_fw-la catholic_n than_o there_o be_v require_v not_o only_o that_o there_o be_v unafide_n but_o unum_fw-la corpus_fw-la eph._n 4.4_o 5._o under_o subordinate_a governor_n verse_n 11._o not_o only_a unitas_fw-la in_o symbolo_fw-la &_o sacramentis_fw-la but_o it_o in_o vinculo_fw-la patis_fw-la as_o it_o extend_v to_o all_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n of_o inferior_n to_o their_o superior_n of_o the_o part_n to_o the_o law_n and_o constitution_n of_o the_o whole_a for_o want_v of_o which_o late_a the_o donatist_n orthodox_n as_o to_o all_o fundamental_o yet_o be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v in_o ecclesiâ_fw-la catholicâ_fw-la and_o these_o other_o necessary_a property_n of_o a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o church-catholick_n 4._o §._o 60._o n._n 4._o beside_o that_o of_o a_o right_a belief_n in_o fundamental_o be_v free_o also_o confess_v by_o learned_a protestant_n which_o thus_o dr._n field_n 2._o field_n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o this_o entire_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n reveal_v in_o christ_n though_o it_o distinguish_v right_a believer_n from_o heretic_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o proper_a quarto_fw-la modo_fw-la to_o the_o happy_a number_n and_o bless_a company_n of_o catholic_n christian_n because_o schismatic_n may_v and_o sometime_o do_v hold_v a_o entire_a profession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o christ_n and_o afterward_o the_o note_n say_v he_o that_o perpetual_o distinguish_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n from_o all_o other_o society_n of_o man_n and_o profession_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n be_v these_o first_o the_o entire_a profession_n of_o those_o
church_n we_o believe_v in_o our_o creed_n 2_o lie_n since_o both_o these_o eastern_a and_o western_a require_v the_o very_a same_o condition_n of_o communion_n as_o they_o do_v now_o before_o luther_n day_n it_o follow_v that_o then_o they_o be_v also_o no_o less_o than_o now_o schismatical_a and_o so_o fall_v from_o catholic_n for_o this_o that_o all_o people_n that_o be_v their_o subject_n conform_v to_o such_o condition_n or_o some_o not_o conform_v alter_v not_o their_o guilt_n who_o then_o impose_v such_o thing_n or_o if_o it_o do_v it_o seem_v then_o the_o great_a when_o all_o do_v conform_v and_o be_v mislead_v by_o they_o and_o upon_o this_o again_o it_o follow_v that_o there_o be_v then_o the_o protestant_n church_n not_o yet_o bear_v no_o catholic_n church_n at_o all_o contrary_a to_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n the_o whole_a be_v involve_v in_o schism_n if_o all_o then_o conform_v of_o which_o conformity_n the_o archbishop_n say_v 296.297_o say_v p._n 296.297_o and_o mr._n stillingfleet_n the_o same_o 618_o same_o p._n 618_o that_o he_o that_o believe_v as_o that_o church_n believe_v speak_v of_o the_o roman_a and_o so_o may_v all_o those_o be_v presume_v to_o believe_v that_o live_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o a_o resolution_n to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o it_o be_v guilty_a more_o or_o less_o of_o the_o schism_n which_o that_o church_n first_o cause_v by_o her_o corruption_n and_o now_o continue_v by_o they_o and_o her_o power_n together_o and_o of_o all_o other_o damnable_a opinion_n too_o in_o point_n of_o misbelief_n and_o of_o all_o other_o sin_n also_o which_o the_o doctrine_n and_o misbelief_n of_o that_o church_n lead_v he_o into_o and_o afterward_o that_o he_o who_o live_v in_o a_o shismatical_a church_n and_o communicate_v with_o it_o in_o the_o schism_n and_o in_o all_o the_o superstition_n and_o corruption_n which_o that_o church_n teach_v nay_o life_n and_o die_v in_o they_o if_o he_o be_v of_o capacity_n enough_o and_o understand_v it_o he_o must_v needs_o be_v a_o formal_a schismatic_a or_o a_o involve_a one_o if_o he_o understand_v it_o not_o thus_o he_o or_o if_o some_o then_o do_v not_o conform_v to_o what_o these_o guide_n require_v yet_o it_o follow_v at_o least_o that_o there_o be_v then_o no_o know_v ecclesiastical_a governor_n and_o leader_n no_o bishop_n in_o or_o of_o that_o church_n catholic_n that_o then_o be_v for_o we_o know_v of_o none_o such_o that_o in_o the_o age_n before_o luther_n oppose_v such_o a_o conformity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o laic_n and_o inferior_n i._n e._n make_v up_o only_o of_o some_o sheep_n that_o be_v depart_v and_o strangle_v from_o their_o shepherd_n or_o rather_o the_o shepherd_n from_o they_o absurdity_n that_o need_v be_v no_o further_o aggravate_v but_o 2_o lie_v to_o what_o be_v say_v it_o be_v answer_v 1._o that_o neither_o can_v the_o supreme_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n in_o a_o approve_a council_n at_o any_o time_n require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n of_o which_o see_v before_o §_o 21._o 2._o §._o 63._o n._n 2._o and_o what_o st._n austin_n 118._o austin_n epist_n 118._o say_v of_o general_a church_n practice_n be_v as_o or_o more_o true_a of_o her_o doctrine_n si_fw-la quid_fw-la horum_fw-la per_fw-la orbem_fw-la frequent_a at_o or_o cred_a it_o ecclesia_fw-la hoc_fw-la quin_fw-la it_o a_o faciendum_fw-la or_o credendum_fw-la fit_a disputare_fw-la insolentissimae_fw-la insaniae_fw-la est_fw-la 2._o nor_o though_o this_o shall_v be_v grant_v and_o also_o that_o they_o excommunicate_v those_o that_o refuse_v to_o conform_v can_v they_o thereby_o become_v guilty_a of_o schism_n for_o 1_o schism_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o separate_v and_o divide_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n can_v never_o be_v of_o a_o much_o major_n and_o more_o dignify_a part_n in_o respect_n of_o a_o less_o and_o inferior_a subject_a to_o it_o i._n e._n the_o main_a body_n be_v a_o schismatic_a from_o some_o single_a member_n thereof_o for_o this_o main_a body_n in_o any_o division_n be_v right_o take_v for_o that_o whole_a see_z 2_o d._n disc_n §_o 25._o from_o which_o a_o separation_n be_v schism_n and_o to_o which_o every_o member_n ought_v to_o adhere_v as_o to_o the_o body_n and_o the_o head_n here_o upon_o earth_n to_o which_o it_o belong_v the_o sin_n of_o schism_n i_o say_v be_v of_o a_o member_n depart_v from_o the_o body_n not_o of_o the_o body_n separate_v from_o a_o member_n or_o separate_v a_o member_n from_o it_o to_o which_o each_o member_n ought_v to_o conform_v otherwise_o a_o division_n in_o the_o church_n indeed_o may_v be_v see_v but_o on_o what_o side_n the_o crime_n of_o schism_n be_v can_v by_o any_o certain_a index_n of_o it_o be_v know_v and_o st._n augustine_n 4._o augustine_n de_fw-fr unitat_fw-la ecclae_n c._n 4._o mark_n of_o schismatic_n quorum_fw-la communio_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la cum_fw-la toto_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o aliquâ_fw-la parte_fw-la separatâ_fw-la will_v be_v fallacious_a and_o nothing_o worth_a meanwhile_o it_o be_v not_o here_o deny_v that_o the_o divide_v of_o one_o or_o several_a superior_n from_o a_o inferior_a part_n if_o it_o be_v for_o any_o thing_n wherein_o such_o part_n not_o they_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o whole_a may_v be_v schism_n but_o then_o that_o which_o make_v this_o schism_n be_v the_o departure_n of_o such_o superior_n from_o their_o superior_n or_o from_o the_o whole_a with_o which_o this_o part_n coheres_fw-la and_o when_o any_o superior_a make_v any_o such_o division_n from_o his_o subject_n he_o be_v no_o long_o their_o lawful_a su●eriour_n but_o that_o large_a body_n and_o those_o superior_n of_o he_o to_o which_o his_o subject_n be_v join_v and_o from_o which_o he_o divide_v 2_o again_o since_o schism_n be_v always_o a_o relinquish_a of_o and_o departure_n from_o the_o external_a and_o visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n these_o governor_n can_v be_v say_v to_o depart_v from_o that_o communion_n which_o they_o still_o retain_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o former_o and_o which_o be_v the_o only_a visible_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o such_o excommunication_n external_n member_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o they_o still_o remain_v and_o so_o no_o schismatic_n though_o all_o the_o same_o person_n or_o many_o of_o they_o by_o some_o other_o mortal_a sin_n may_v be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n no_o internal_a member_n of_o it_o 3._o and_o as_o they_o can_v be_v right_o call_v schismatic_n or_o person_n divide_v from_o the_o church-catholick_n 3._o §._o 63._o n._n 3._o so_o neither_o can_v such_o superior_n by_o impose_v some_o error_n on_o man_n belief_n or_o by_o inflict_v a_o unjust_a excommunication_n be_v therefore_o say_v to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o schism_n or_o a_o actual_a separation_n in_o other_o as_o they_o be_v often_o charge_v 133.142_o charge_v ap._n laud_n p._n 133.142_o unless_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v be_v such_o for_o the_o church_n concur_v to_o no_o other_o separation_n if_o any_o so_o excommunicate_v do_v not_o quiet_o submit_v thereto_o and_o acquiesce_v therein_o with_o patience_n but_o proceed_v so_o much_o further_o as_o to_o set_v up_o or_o join_v himself_o with_o a_o communion_n diverse_a from_o that_o of_o the_o former_a church_n which_o he_o be_v expel_v from_o or_o presume_v to_o exercise_v out_o of_o the_o church_n those_o ecclesiastical_a function_n which_o she_o have_v though_o wrongful_o suspend_v here_o indeed_o begin_v a_o faulty_a separation_n and_o a_o schism_n but_o by_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o excommunicate_v not_o of_o the_o church_n that_o unjust_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o do_v not_o thereby_o necessitate_v he_o to_o any_o such_o further_a removal_n or_o discession_n from_o it_o have_v he_o rest_v in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o church_n leave_v he_o the_o church_n have_v be_v faulty_a indeed_o he_o innocent_a but_o on_o no_o hand_n a_o schism_n and_o if_o he_o will_v not_o stay_v here_o but_o set_v up_o a_o anti-communion_n and_o fall_v on_o act_v against_o the_o church_n that_o expel_v he_o here_o he_o can_v defend_v the_o do_v a_o wrong_n because_o he_o have_v suffer_v one_o or_o just_o disburden_v on_o the_o church_n that_o fault_n of_o he_o to_o which_o no_o fault_n of_o they_o necessitate_v he_o saepe_fw-la sinit_fw-la divina_fw-la providentia_fw-la say_v st._n austin_n 6._o austin_n de_fw-fr verâ_fw-la religione_fw-la c._n 6._o expelli_fw-la de_fw-la congregatione_fw-la christianâ_fw-la etiam_fw-la bonos_fw-es viros_fw-la quam_fw-la contumeliam_fw-la vel_fw-la injuriam_fw-la svam_fw-la cum_fw-la patientissime_fw-la pro_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la pace_fw-la tulerint_fw-la neque_fw-la ullas_fw-la novitates_fw-la vel_fw-la shismatis_fw-la vel_fw-la haeresis_fw-la moliti_fw-la fuerint_fw-la docebunt_fw-la homines_fw-la quantâ_fw-la sinceritate_fw-la charitatis_fw-la deo_fw-la serviendum_fw-la sit_fw-la etc._n etc._n neque_fw-la ullas_fw-la novitates_fw-la vel_fw-la schismatis_fw-la therefore_o
*_o a_o government_n constitute_v by_o god_n found_v and_o compact_a in_o a_o due_a subordination_n to_o keep_v all_o its_o member_n in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n from_o be_v toss_v too_o and_o fro_o with_o several_a doctrine_n eph._n 4.11_o 13_o 14_o 16._o and_o *_o perpetual_o to_o the_o world_n end_n assist_v with_o the_o paraclet_n send_v from_o our_o ascend_v lord_n to_o give_v they_o into_o all_o truth_n jo._n 14.16_o 26._o *_o which_o governor_n who_o so_o resist_v be_v in_o this_o render_v self-condemned_n tit._n 3.11_o last_o *_o s._n peter_n entitle_v to_o some_o special_a presidence_n over_o this_o whole_a church_n by_o those_o text_n tu_fw-la es_fw-la petrus_n &_o super_fw-la hanc_fw-la petram_fw-la mat._n 16._o and_o rogavi_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la ut_fw-la non_fw-la deficiat_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la tu_fw-la confirma_fw-la fratres_fw-la luk._n 12.2.32_o and_o pass_v oves_fw-la meas_fw-la jo._n 21.10_o compare_v with_o gal._n 2.7_o where_o thus_o s._n paul_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o uncircumcision_n be_v commit_v to_o i_o as_o to_o peter_n say_v he_o relate_v to_o the_o pasce_fw-la in_o s._n john_n be_v commit_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o circumcision_n where_o it_o be_v observable_a also_o that_o then_o be_v the_o circumcision_n the_o whole_a flock_n of_o christ_n when_o it_o be_v commit_v to_o peter_n st._n peter_n commission_n over_o christ_n sheep_n be_v ordinary_a give_v by_o our_o lord_n here_o on_o earth_n who_o also_o have_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o first_o convert_v and_o admit_v of_o the_o gentile_n into_o this_o fold_n 7_o fold_n act._n 10_o 34-11_a 2-15_a 7_o st._n pawles_n over_o the_o gentile_n extraordinary_a give_v by_o our_o lord_n from_o heaven_n 6.-22.17.21_a heaven_n act._n 9_o 6.-22.17.21_a and_o this_o commission_n manifest_v to_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o supereminent_a grace_n of_o convert_v soul_n and_o of_o miracle_n that_o be_v bestow_v upon_o he_o gal._n 2.8.9_o like_o to_o that_o more_o eminent_o give_v to_o st._n peter_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o act._n 9.40_o and_o 20.10_o act._n 5.15_o and_o 19.12_o 5.5_o and_z 13_o 11-2.41.4.4_a and_o rom._n 15_o 17_o 18_o 19_o compare_v and_o that_o which_o be_v say_v gal._n 2._o that_o the_o apostle_n see_v the_o gospel_n of_o the_o circumcision_n commit_v to_o peter_n argue_v they_o see_v it_o commit_v to_o peter_n in_o some_o such_o special_a or_o superintendent_n manner_n as_o not_o also_o to_o they_o §_o 68_o again_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o the_o constitution_n and_o temper_n and_o manner_n of_o practice_n of_o this_o church_n in_o the_o primitive_a time_n from_o the_o very_a first_o we_o find_v it_o act_v as_o st._n paul_n direct_v archbishop_n titus_n c._n 2.15_o cum_fw-la omni_fw-la imperio_fw-la ut_fw-la nemo_fw-la contemnat_fw-la severe_o eject_v and_o deliver_v to_o satan_n after_o some_o admonition_n those_o that_o be_v heterodox_n and_o heretical_a 11.-1.11_a heretical_a 1_o tim._n 1.20_o th._n 3_o 11.-1.11_a in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n a_o council_n call_v and_o the_o stile_n of_o it_o visum_fw-la est_fw-la spiritui_fw-la sancto_fw-la &_o nobis_fw-la and_o nobis_fw-la collectis_fw-la in_o unum_fw-la 15.25.28_o unum_fw-la act._n 15.25.28_o and_o if_o here_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o infallible_a apostle_n have_v some_o hand_n therein_o yet_o if_o we_o look_v low_a we_o find_v still_o the_o same_o authority_n maintain_v and_o exercise_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o latter_a age_n and_o especial_o by_o that_o of_o the_o 4_o the_o age_n when_o flour_v sh_v under_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o secular_a power_n now_o become_v christian_n if_o full_o enjoy_v as_o also_o the_o present_n do_v in_o these_o western_a part_n the_o free_a exercise_n of_o its_o law_n and_o discipline_n §_o 69_o in_o all_o these_o time_n then_o 1_o st_z we_o find_v the_o unquestioned_a church_n catholic_n of_o those_o day_n firm_o join_v with_o and_o adhere_v to_o that_o which_o be_v then_o ordinary_o style_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o st._n peter_n chair_n and_o with_o the_o bishop_n call_v his_o successor_n as_o if_o matt._n 16.18_o and_o luke_n 22.23_o be_v a_o prophecy_n thereof_o though_o some_o other_o of_o the_o great_a patriarch_n stand_v not_o so_o firm_a but_o that_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o those_o day_n relinquish_v and_o cut_v they_o off_o we_o find_v the_o same_o church_n when_o any_o opposition_n of_o its_o doctrine_n happen_v as_o it_o be_v then_o exercise_v with_o the_o high_a controversy_n that_o ever_o trouble_a the_o church_n take_v very_o much_o authority_n upon_o itself_o assemble_v itself_o in_o a_o general_n body_n make_v new_a definition_n as_o necessity_n require_v anathematise_v all_o dissenter_n insert_v as_o it_o see_v meet_v for_o the_o more_o explicit_a knowledge_n of_o they_o by_o all_o its_o subject_n some_o of_o its_o decision_n in_o the_o church_n creed_n which_o be_v by_o it_o much_o enlarge_v from_o what_o they_o be_v former_o we_o find_v it_o declare_v this_o also_o in_o the_o creed_n concern_v itself_o and_o enjoin_v it_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o christian_n that_o the_o catholic_n church_n continue_v always_o holy_a apostolical_a preserve_n their_o rule_n tradition_n and_o doctrine_n and_o one_o indivisa_fw-la in_o se_fw-la unite_a in_o its_o say_v and_o communion_n and_o divisa_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la aliis_fw-la distinct_a from_o all_o other_o who_o she_o declare_v heretical_a or_o schismatical_a §_o 70_o 2._o again_o we_o find_v it_o by_o such_o definition_n put_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o belief_n of_o they_o exact_v sufficient_o declare_v also_o 2._o 2._o that_o it_o hold_v itself_o to_o be_v i_o say_v not_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v against_o which_o only_a perhaps_o misunderstand_v his_o adversary_n mr._n stillingfleet_n dispute_v 558._o dispute_v p._n 558._o infallible_a or_o actual_o unerring_a in_o they_o thus_o much_o be_v clear_a i_o say_v concern_v the_o catholic_n church_n and_o her_o general_a council_n of_o those_o time_n that_o they_o hold_v themselves_o infallible_a in_o the_o thing_n they_o define_v and_o if_o the_o testimony_n and_o veracity_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o her_o unite_a governor_n in_o what_o she_o then_o profess_v as_o of_o other_o thing_n so_o of_o herself_o can_v obtain_v no_o belief_n with_o some_o protestant_n either_o from_o the_o witness_n that_o church-tradition_n ground_v at_o first_o on_o miracle_n or_o that_o the_o scripture_n or_o some_o other_o sufficient_a evidence_n in_o point_n of_o reason_n 8._o reason_n see_v before_o §._o 8._o which_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 559._o stillingfleet_n p._n 559._o be_v content_v with_o gives_z to_z it_o of_o which_o see_v below_o §_o 87._o etc._n etc._n yet_o protestant_n must_v grant_v that_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n which_o or_o where_o ever_o it_o be_v shall_v it_o profess_v itself_o infallible_a err_v now_o only_a the_o same_o error_n which_o the_o ancient_a church-catholick_n do_v before_o it_o and_o if_o here_o it_o be_v think_v that_o this_o may_v qualify_v some_o thing_n concern_v the_o former_a church_n that_o by_o this_o way_n it_o declare_v not_o itself_o infallible_a universal_o but_o only_o in_o those_o thing_n it_o define_v so_o i_o say_v neither_o do_v the_o church-catholick_n of_o the_o present_a age_n profess_v herself_o infallible_a save_v in_o her_o definition_n nor_o require_v she_o of_o her_o definition_n any_o other_o belief_n than_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v of_o she_o nor_o matter_n it_o whether_o this_o certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o her_o definition_n arise_v from_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o former_a revelation_n and_o tradition_n of_o such_o point_n define_v or_o from_o our_o lord_n promise_v that_o in_o her_o definition_n she_o shall_v not_o err_v see_v before_o §_o 10._o to_o proceed_v §_o 71_o 3._o we_o find_v it_o *_o declare_v those_o heretic_n who_o oppose_v any_o of_o those_o definition_n and_o expel_v they_o from_o the_o catholic_n communion_n most_o strict_a by_o synodical_a and_o communicatory_a letter_n in_o preserve_v in_o all_o point_v once_o define_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o most_o careful_o separate_v from_o any_o person_n suspect_v of_o any_o heterodoxness_n or_o division_n from_o it_o *_o proceed_v in_o its_o censure_n not_o only_o against_o some_o private_a person_n but_o against_o church_n against_o bishop_n against_o patriarch_n themselves_o yet_o such_o as_o then_o also_o fail_v not_o to_o pretend_v a_o dutiful_a continuance_n in_o the_o faith_n of_o former_a age_n and_o appeal_v to_o the_o former_a short_a creed_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n such_o authority_n the_o church_n fallible_a or_o infallible_a then_o presume_v to_o use_v cum_fw-la omni_fw-la imperio_fw-la and_o punish_v all_o contempt_n §_o 72_o if_o we_o look_v next_o on_o the_o two_o present_a body_n or_o combination_n of_o church_n that_o flourish_n at_o this_o day_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o world_n church_n 2._o the_o face_n of_o
easy_o persuade_v person_n of_o much_o reason_n and_o more_o piety_n to_o retain_v that_o which_o they_o know_v to_o have_v be_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o forefather_n which_o have_v actual_a possession_n and_o seizure_n of_o man_n understanding_n before_o the_o opposite_a profession_n have_v a_o name_n these_o be_v first_o it_o be_v doctrine_n have_v have_v a_o long_a continuance_n and_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n which_o therefore_o can_v easy_o be_v suppose_v in_o the_o present_a professor_n to_o be_v a_o design_n for_o covetous_a ambitious_a and_o other_o unlawful_a end_n of_o which_o yet_o protestant_n frequent_o accuse_v they_o since_o they_o have_v receive_v it_o from_o so_o many_o age_n and_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a that_o all_o age_n shall_v have_v the_o same_o purpose_n or_o that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n shall_v serve_v the_o several_a end_n of_o diverse_a age_n it_o be_v long_a prescription_n which_o be_v such_o a_o prejudice_n as_o can_v with_o many_o argument_n be_v retrench_v as_o rely_v upon_o these_o ground_n that_o truth_n be_v more_o ancient_a than_o falsehood_n that_o god_n will_v not_o for_o so_o many_o age_n forsake_v his_o church_n and_o leave_v she_o in_o a_o error_n i_o add_v not_o in_o such_o gross_a error_n as_o be_v impute_v especial_o not_o in_o idolatry_n so_o manifold_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o eucharist_n of_o the_o cross_n of_o angel_n and_o saint_n of_o relic_n of_o image_n etc._n etc._n again_o the_o beauty_n and_o splendour_n of_o that_o church_n their_o pompous_a service_n in_o a_o friendly_o expression_n their_o service_n full_a of_o religious_a ceremony_n and_o external_a veneration_n the_o stateliness_n and_o solemnity_n of_o the_o hierarchy_n their_o name_n of_o catholic_n which_o they_o suppose_v be_v claim_n as_o their_o own_o due_a and_o to_o concern_v no_o other_o sect_n of_o christian_n the_o antiquity_n of_o many_o of_o their_o doctrine_n the_o continual_a succession_n of_o their_o bishop_n their_o immediate_a derivation_n from_o the_o apostle_n their_o title_n to_o succeed_v st._n peter_n and_o in_o this_o regard_n chief_o honour_v and_o submit_v to_o by_o antiquity_n the_o supposal_n and_o pretence_n of_o his_o personal_a prerogative_n much_o speak_v of_o by_o the_o father_n the_o flatter_a expression_n of_o minor_a bishop_n in_o modest_a language_n the_o honourable_a expression_n concern_v this_o church_n from_o many_o eminent_a bishop_n of_o other_o inferior_a see_v which_v by_o be_v old_a record_n have_v obtain_v credibility_n the_o multitude_n and_o variety_n of_o people_n which_o be_v of_o their_o persuasion_n apparent_a consent_n with_o some_o elder_a age_n in_o many_o matter_n doctrinal_a the_o advantage_n which_o be_v derive_v to_o they_o by_o entertain_v some_o personal_a opinion_n of_o father_n which_o they_o with_o infinite_a clamour_n cry_v up_o to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n or_o true_o thus_o entertain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o ancient_a time_n which_o protestant_n cry_v down_o as_o only_o the_o personal_a opinion_n of_o the_o father_n the_o great_a consent_n of_o one_o part_n with_o another_o in_o that_o which_o most_o of_o they_o affirm_v to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la the_o great_a difference_n which_o be_v commence_v among_o their_o adversary_n abuse_v the_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v unto_o a_o very_a great_a licentiousness_n their_o happiness_n of_o be_v instrument_n in_o convert_v diverse_a nation_n the_o advantage_n of_o monarchical_a government_n the_o benefit_n of_o which_o they_o daily_o do_v enjoy_v the_o piety_n and_o the_o austerity_n of_o their_o religious_a order_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n the_o single_a life_n of_o their_o priest_n and_o bishop_n the_o riches_n of_o their_o church_n the_o severity_n of_o their_o fast_n and_o their_o exterior_a observance_n the_o great_a reputation_n of_o their_o bishop_n for_o faith_n and_o sanctity_n the_o know_a holiness_n of_o some_o of_o those_o person_n who_o institutes_n the_o religious_a person_n pretend_v to_o imitate_v their_o miracle_n false_a or_o true_a substantial_a or_o imaginary_a or_o true_o several_a of_o which_o though_o none_o affirm_v all_o or_o perhaps_o the_o most_o of_o those_o pretend_a be_v confirm_v by_o such_o clear_a testimony_n as_o if_o any_o faith_n may_v be_v have_v to_o any_o humane_a testimony_n or_o to_o any_o history_n they_o can_v be_v false_a or_o imaginary_a the_o casualty_n and_o accident_n that_o have_v happen_v to_o their_o adversary_n the_o oblique_a act_n and_o indirect_a proceed_n of_o some_o of_o those_o who_o depart_v from_o they_o and_o among_o many_o other_o thing_n the_o name_n of_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_a which_o they_o with_o infinite_a pertinacy_n fasten_v upon_o all_o that_o disagree_v from_o they_o or_o true_o which_o this_o church_n with_o a_o venerable_a and_o paternal_a authority_n and_o correction_n as_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v do_v and_o none_o other_o church_n in_o this_o age_n except_o this_o presume_v to_o do_v pronounce_v on_o all_o other_o who_o depart_v from_o her_o faith_n or_o communion_n as_o also_o in_o former_a age_n the_o same_o name_n have_v be_v fasten_v on_o all_o those_o who_o have_v so_o depart_v on_o berengarius_fw-la wicliff_n waldeneses_n etc._n etc._n these_o persuasive_n dr._n taylor_n have_v there_o collect_v as_o induce_v person_n of_o much_o reason_n and_o more_o piety_n to_o retain_v the_o religion_n of_o ●heir_a forefather_n now_o let_v any_o if_o they_o can_v gather_v out_o of_o he_o ●he_v counter-perswasives_a that_o over-poise_n these_o and_o may_v induce_v person_n of_o much_o reason_n and_o equal_a piety_n to_o renounce_v the_o religion_n of_o their_o forefather_n and_o harken_v to_o some_o negative_a argument_n ●rom_o scripture_n or_o for_o some_o point_n perhaps_o also_o from_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n commit_v themselves_o to_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o new_a reformer_n at_o the_o first_o a_o few_o of_o the_o low_a rank_n of_o clergy_n lie_v under_o the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n assist_v against_o their_o spiritual_a superior_n by_o some_o secular_a power_n when_o both_o they_o and_o these_o be_v subject_n as_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o spiritual_a matter_n to_o that_o ecclesiastical_a hierarchy_n which_o they_o oppose_v now_o to_o confirm_v what_o have_v be_v say_v above_o 2._o §._o 82._o n._n 2._o in_o the_o last_o place_n i_o will_v set_v you_o down_o some_o passage_n of_o s._n austin_n represent_v the_o catholic_n church_n 1._o as_o a_o unite_a and_o distinct_a body_n 2._o easy_o discernible_a from_o sect_n 3._o and_o where_o scripture_n be_v controvert_v to_o be_v obey_v and_o adhere_v to_o 4._o though_o this_o not_o always_o for_o any_o other_o present_a reason_n or_o proof_n give_v we_o of_o what_o she_o hold_v save_v only_o that_o of_o her_o authority_n which_o passage_n of_o this_o the_o most_o eminent_a father_n of_o the_o church_n i_o also_o serious_o commend_v to_o his_o meditation_n who_o be_v in_o a_o humble_a quest_n after_o this_o guide_n one_a concern_v the_o catholic_n church_n that_o it_o where_o any_o division_n be_v make_v from_o superior_n as_o be_v make_v by_o the_o donatist_n from_o a_o general_n council_n be_v only_o one_o of_o these_o church_n and_o not_o both_o st._n austin_n 10._o austin_n de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la l._n 1_o c._n 10._o mention_n this_o proposition_n as_o agree_v on_o both_o by_o the_o donatist_n and_o catholic_n unam_fw-la oportet_fw-la esse_fw-la eccles●am_fw-la 10._o eccles●am_fw-la cap_n 10._o and_o una_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quaeeunque_fw-la illa_fw-la sit_fw-la de_fw-la quâ_fw-la dictum_fw-la est_fw-la c._n est_fw-la cantic_a 6._o c._n una_fw-la est_fw-la columba_fw-la mea_fw-la una_fw-la est_fw-la matri_fw-la suae_fw-la nec_fw-la possunt_fw-la tot_fw-la esse_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la quot_fw-la schismata_fw-la 11._o schismata_fw-la de_fw-fr baptismo_fw-la 1._o 1._o c._n 11._o and_o so_o he_o allow_v the_o donatist_n argue_v si_fw-la nostra_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la christi_fw-la vestra_fw-la communio_fw-la this_o tenent_n of_o they_o he_o pass_v for_o truth_n and_o only_o oppose_v this_o other_o that_o they_o and_o not_o that_o from_o which_o they_o separate_v be_v it_o and_o there_o prove_v the_o contrary_a viz._n that_o the_o antidonatist_a be_v that_o una_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quae_fw-la sola_fw-la catholica_fw-la nominatur_fw-la and_o that_o the_o donatist_n be_v communio_fw-la a_fw-la suâ_fw-la unitate_fw-la separata_fw-la 10._o separata_fw-la ib._n cap._n 10._o 2._o again_o concern_v this_o one_o catholic_n church_n that_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v know_v and_o discern_v from_o other_o 3._o §._o 82._o n._n 3._o he_o say_v in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la against_o the_o same_o donatist_n 20._o donatist_n cap._n 20._o non_fw-la est_fw-la obscura_fw-la quaestio_fw-la in_fw-la quâ_fw-la vos_fw-la fallunt_fw-la quos_fw-la ipse_fw-la dominus_fw-la praedixit_fw-la futuros_fw-la atque_fw-la dicturos_fw-la ecce_fw-la hic_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la
as_o a_o prelatist_n for_o since_o the_o judgement_n here_o concern_v the_o condition_n viz._n when_o the_o church_n prove_v what_o she_o propose_v or_o when_o the_o subscriber_n prove_v the_o contrary_a when_o he_o be_v competent_a to_o search_v ground_n or_o the_o church_n unfaithful_a in_o conserve_n her_o depositum_fw-la be_v leave_v not_o to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o the_o subscriber_n it_o cast_v the_o assent_n and_o dissent_v also_o whole_o into_o his_o disposal_n and_o arbitrement_n and_o note_v here_o also_o that_o who_o may_v require_v only_o a_o conditional_a assent_n can_v likewise_o exact_v only_o in_o such_o point_n as_o be_v practical_a a_o conditional_a conformity_n i._n e._n that_o none_o be_v absolute_o enjoin_v to_o practise_v such_o a_o thing_n but_o only_o upon_o supposition_n that_o the_o church_n first_o prove_v it_o to_o he_o lawful_a to_o be_v do_v or_o that_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o the_o church_n to_o be_v unlawful_a or_o that_o he_o be_v a_o person_n unable_a to_o search_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n or_o unlawfulness_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n of_o which_o ●_z himself_n also_o not_o the_o church_n be_v judge_n for_o otherwise_o he_o that_o oblige_v a_o person_n absolute_o to_o the_o performance_n of_o a_o thing_n oblige_v he_o also_o absolute_o to_o the_o believe_v that_o thing_n lawful_a to_o be_v do_v which_o late_a the_o church_n of_o england_n not_o own_v neither_o may_v she_o the_o first_o and_o who_o ought_v to_o have_v his_o liberty_n for_o the_o one_o ought_v so_o for_o the_o other_o too_o now_o it_o be_v ordinary_a in_o the_o english_a canon_n to_o require_v upon_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n conformity_n to_o her_o constitution_n where_o have_v this_o secret_a be_v know_v to_o the_o presbyterian_o that_o it_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o such_o a_o conditional_a conformity_n i_o suppose_v there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o cause_n of_o their_o forbear_n subscription_n or_o complain_v of_o the_o english_a church-law_n their_o be_v as_o rigorous_a and_o unjust_a as_o those_o of_o rome_n thus_o i_o have_v make_v a_o search_n into_o the_o obedience_n 11._o §._o 85._o n._n 11._o which_o be_v require_v of_o her_o subject_n by_o a_o church_n that_o seem_v not_o well_o ground_v in_o her_o authority_n by_o reason_n that_o have_v disjoin_v herself_o from_o that_o which_o she_o acknowledge_v be_v former_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o from_o superior_a council_n she_o can_v neither_o lay_v claim_n to_o that_o infallibility_n in_o necessary_n which_o from_o our_o lord_n perpetual_a superintendency_n reside_v in_o the_o whole_a as_o all_o member_n thorough_o consent_v with_o the_o whole_a and_o guide_v by_o it_o do_v lay_v claim_v to_o such_o infallibility_n and_o therefore_o do_v require_v obedience_n from_o their_o subject_n in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o whole_a do_v as_o to_o all_o such_o doctrine_n wherein_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o whole_a nor_o can_v she_o standing_z apart_z and_o allege_v the_o reason_n of_o it_o the_o former_a church_n error_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o claim_v a_o new_a infallibility_n to_o herself_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n if_o there_o seem_v some_o uncertainty_n what_o obedience_n she_o require_v where_o there_o be_v what_o authority_n she_o possess_v and_o where_o such_o obedience_n be_v ground_v rather_o on_o the_o pretend_a clear_a evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n propose_v than_o the_o sovereign_a and_o undeclinable_a authority_n of_o the_o proposer_n meanwhile_o whether_o she_o challenge_v a_o obedience_n of_o assent_n from_o her_o subject_n 12._o §._o 85._o n._n 12._o or_o that_o of_o noncontradiction_n i_o see_v not_o how_o she_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n or_o by_o her_o own_o principle_n for_o 1_o by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n if_o she_o just_o require_v assent_v from_o she_o and_o be_v she_o not_o in_o conscience_n oblige_v to_o yield_v it_o these_o as_o well_o as_o she_o determine_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o think_v a_o clear_a truth_n or_o can_v she_o blame_v the_o fallible_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o require_v assent_n to_o her_o canon_n upon_o anathema_n when_o she_o fallible_a require_v the_o same_o upon_o excommunication_n for_o the_o disparity_n that_o be_v make_v here_o have_v be_v former_o answer_v and_o any_o evidence_n or_o certainty_n protestant_n pretend_v for_o those_o doctrine_n to_o which_o they_o require_v assent_v the_o roman_a church_n plead_v the_o like_a for_o she_o and_o so_o sub_fw-la judice_fw-la lie_fw-la est_fw-la concern_v this_o hear_v mr._n chillingw_o 375._o chillingw_o p._n 375._o any_o thing_n beside_o scripture_n and_o the_o plain_a irrefragable_a indubitable_a consequence_n of_o it_o i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v appear_v such_o not_o only_o to_o the_o church-governor_n but_o their_o subject_n and_o that_o all_o the_o 39_o article_n have_v not_o such_o a_o evidence_n well_o may_v protestant_n hold_v it_o as_o matter_n of_o opinion_n but_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n neither_o can_v they_o with_o coherence_n to_o their_o own_o ground_n believe_v it_o themselves_o nor_o require_v the_o belief_n of_o it_o of_o other_o without_o most_o high_a and_o most_o schismatical_a presumption_n but_o 2_o if_o lay_v assent_n aside_o only_o a_o noncontradiction_n of_o her_o article_n or_o a_o non-affirmation_n that_o they_o be_v any_o way_n erroneous_a be_v require_v upon_o excommunication_n of_o the_o person_n so_o offend_v yet_o neither_o will_v this_o be_v justifiable_a by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n for_o no_o canon_n of_o a_o national_a synod_n can_v just_o pronounce_v excommunication_n on_o any_o for_o affirm_v so_o many_o point_n in_o their_o article_n erroneous_a as_o have_v be_v determine_v by_o superior_a council_n a_o general_n or_o a_o patriarchal_a synod_n contrary_o for_o example_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o a_o national_a synod_n in_o england_n to_o excommunicate_v a_o person_n for_o affirm_v their_o article_n erroneous_a in_o deny_v transubstantiation_n because_o this_o have_v be_v determine_v affirmative_o by_o many_o former_a superior_a synod_n accept_v by_o the_o whole_a western_a church_n as_o be_v show_v before_o 1._o disc_n §_o 57_o which_o therefore_o oblige_v christian_n to_o the_o belief_n and_o profession_n of_o it_o against_o the_o decree_n of_o any_o inferior_a western_a synod_n neither_o 2_o do_v they_o seem_v to_o inflict_v excommunication_n on_o every_o one_o that_o affirm_v any_o of_o their_o article_n erroneous_a without_o condemn_v their_o own_o principle_n because_o what_o they_o say_v of_o general_a council_n be_v as_o true_a i_o suppose_v for_o their_o own_o synod_n viz._n that_o they_o may_v err_v gross_o and_o manifest_o in_o which_o case_n they_o say_v one_o may_v lawful_o affirm_v these_o council_n in_o such_o thing_n erroneous_a else_o how_o can_v they_o ever_o be_v correct_v see_v before_o §_o 43_o 44._o etc._n etc._n the_o case_n therefore_o be_v the_o same_o as_o to_o their_o own_o synod_n and_o then_o for_o what_o they_o say_v a_o person_n may_v lawful_o do_v they_o can_v lawful_o excommunicate_v he_o but_o if_o it_o be_v reply_v 13._o §._o 85._o n._n 13._o that_o their_o synod_n challenge_v a_o obedience_n of_o non_fw-fr contradiction_n only_o to_o what_o they_o be_v certain_a be_v truth_n and_o therefore_o none_o may_v lawful_o in_o such_o case_n contradict_v they_o or_o affirm_v they_o err_v 1_o it_o follow_v they_o may_v upon_o the_o same_o term_n require_v assent_n also_o of_o which_o they_o seem_v more_o rich_a but_o 2_o as_o they_o plead_v certainty_n so_o do_v other_o council_n who_o yet_o they_o will_v not_o excuse_v upon_o this_o pretence_n for_o require_v assent_n as_o have_v be_v but_o now_o say_v 3_o it_o seem_v unreasonable_a that_o a_o certainty_n either_o from_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n necessary_a deduction_n former_a universal_a tradition_n or_o any_o other_o way_n shall_v be_v pretend_v by_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o any_o such_o matter_n from_o which_o a_o major_a part_n of_o christianity_n peruse_v the_o same_o evidence_n dissent_n 12._o dissent_n disc_n 2_o §._o 5._o disc_n 4_o §_o 11_o 12._o such_o as_o be_v several_a of_o the_o 39_o article_n 4_o protestant_n themselves_o affirm_v that_o those_o who_o be_v certain_a of_o truth_n yet_o may_v not_o require_v a_o absolute_a but_o conditional_a assent_n from_o other_o who_o first_o know_v they_o in_o general_a to_o be_v fallible_a and_o next_o do_v not_o know_v or_o have_v it_o not_o prove_v to_o they_o that_o in_o this_o particular_a they_o dot_v err_v see_v before_o §_o 85._o n._n 10._o and_o the_o same_o they_o say_v for_o noncontradiction_n require_v that_o it_o must_v be_v only_o conditional_a i._n e._n if_o the_o contrary_a truth_n to_o the_o error_n define_v do_v not_o appear_v to_o the_o church_n subject_n necessary_a to_o be_v divulge_v meanwhile_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v which_o be_v also_o
say_v he_o they_o think_v he_o subject_a to_o error_n as_o all_o other_o bishop_n be_v so_o do_v roman_a catholic_n too_o 3_o they_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v any_o power_n to_o dispose_v the_o principality_n and_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n or_o depose_v king_n the_o pope_n have_v lawful_a power_n to_o depose_v king_n be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o roman-catholick_n church_n 4_o they_o acknowledge_v all_o our_o righteousness_n to_o be_v imperfect_a and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o safe_a to_o trust_v thereunto_o but_o to_o the_o mere_a mercy_n and_o goodness_n of_o god_n and_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n be_v that_o in_o many_o thing_n we_o offend_v all_o that_o though_o some_o may_v be_v yet_o most_o of_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o regenerate_a be_v not_o free_a from_o mixture_n of_o venial_a sin_n or_o some_o imperfection_n that_o none_o certain_a except_o by_o extraordinary_a divine_a revelation_n of_o his_o justification_n or_o as_o the_o protestant_n have_v rather_o call_v it_o sanctification_n and_o for_o this_o the_o cardinal_n be_v tutissimum_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v very_o famous_a but_o do_v no_o protestant_n presume_v further_o 5_o they_o admit_v not_o the_o merit_n of_o congruence_n condignity_n nor_o work_n of_o supererogation_n and_o 6_o they_o teach_v not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o satisfaction_n as_o the_o romanist_n do_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n right_o understand_v concern_v these_o point_n be_v neither_o contradict_v by_o the_o eastern_a church_n nor_o by_o some_o sober_a protestant_n but_o indeed_o much_o misrelated_a by_o dr._n field_n l._n 3._o p._n 58_o 7_o they_o believe_v not_o purgatory_n neither_o pray_v to_o deliver_v man_n out_o of_o temporal_a punishment_n i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v or_o suffering_n after_o this_o life_n it_o be_v true_a they_o believe_v no_o purgatory-fire_n but_o that_o they_o hold_v some_o temporal_a suffering_n from_o which_o they_o be_v freeable_a by_o prayer_n make_v for_o they_o see_v before_o §_o 192._o and_o sir_n edw._n sandy_n testimony_n §_o 167._o and_o enough_o confess_v in_o this_o matter_n even_o by_o dr._n field_n l._n 3._o p._n 59_o if_o i_o right_o understand_v he_o 8_o they_o reject_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o romanist_n touch_v indulgence_n and_o pardon_n the_o same_n be_v return_v to_o this_o as_o to_o the_o five_o and_o six_o 9_o they_o believe_v not_o that_o there_o be_v seven_o sacrament_n this_n be_v question_v only_o for_o confirmation_n &_o extreme_a unction_n and_o see_v these_o maintain_v by_o jeremias_n the_o patriarch_n and_o many_o other_o author_n as_o to_o the_o greek_a church_n 432._o church_n resp_n 1._o c._n 7._o see_v goar_n eucholog_n concern_v confirmation_n p._n 366._o concern_v extreme_a unction_n their_o officium_fw-la sancti_fw-la olei_fw-la p._n 408_o 432._o in_o other_o eastern_a church_n chrysm_n or_o holy_a oil_n be_v so_o use_v at_o least_o for_o baptism_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o in_o some_o church_n also_o to_o sick_a or_o die_a person_n 387._o person_n thom._n a_o jesus_n p._n 361_o 398._o &_o 387._o 10_o they_o omit_v many_o ceremony_n in_o baptism_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n use_v as_o spittle_n etc._n etc._n nor_n do_v the_o roman_a church_n hold_v it_o necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v use_v the_o same_o 11_o they_o have_v no_o private_a mass_n it_o be_v accidental_a in_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o any_o mass_n be_v private_a i._n e._n that_o the_o priest_n communicate_v alone_o and_o happen_v only_o because_o other_o be_v not_o prepare_v to_o receive_v with_o the_o priest_n not_o because_o they_o be_v prohibit_v and_o if_o any_o faulty_a herein_o it_o be_v the_o people_n or_o other_o clergy_n that_o attend_v the_o mass_n without_o communicate_v not_o the_o priest_n in_o offer_v the_o daily_a christian_a sacrifice_n and_o himself_o at_o least_o participate_v thereof_o the_o greek_n never_o communicate_v alone_o celebrate_v seldomer_n viz._n only_o on_o festival_n on_o those_o day_n only_o one_o of_o they_o all_o the_o rest_n attend_v he_o and_o this_o in_o the_o same_o church_n but_o once_o so_o that_o their_o more_o compleatness_n in_o one_o thing_n be_v accompany_v with_o some_o deficiency_n in_o another_o last_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n wish_v that_o no_o mass_n at_o all_o be_v private_a i._n e._n where_o the_o priest_n officiate_a find_n no_o fellow-communicants_a but_o be_v loath_a to_o purchase_v this_o at_o such_o a_o loss_n as_o some_o other_o do_v viz._n the_o omission_n of_o her_o frequent_a and_o daily_o or_o also_o hourly_o intercession_n with_o god_n for_o all_o necessity_n by_o this_o most_o acceptable_a sacrifice_n offer_v to_o he_o by_o the_o fervent_a devotion_n of_o so_o many_o of_o her_o priest_n 12_o they_o minister_v the_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n to_o all_o communicant_n of_o this_o see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 163._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v it_o not_o necessary_a but_o only_o lawful_a and_o expedient_a as_o the_o time_n be_v to_o do_v otherwise_o and_o also_o indulge_v receive_v in_o both_o kind_n to_o several_a of_o her_o communion_n 13._o they_o believe_v not_o transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o new_a real_a sacrifice_a of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v affirm_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n only_o a_o sacrifice_n commemorative_n of_o that_o of_o the_o cross_n and_o this_o effective_a only_o in_o the_o virtue_n and_o merit_n of_o that_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n tenent_n concern_v christ_n corporal_a presence_n in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o consequent_o of_o their_o use_n of_o this_o sacrifice_n agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o reform_a see_v before_o §_o 158._o n._n 2._o &_o §_o 160._o 14._o they_o have_v the_o divine_a service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n some_o eastern_a church_n have_v so_o the_o most_o have_v not_o the_o divine_a service_n be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o corrupt_a chaldee_n or_o syriack_n among_o the_o maronites_n cophthites_n nestorian_n assyrian_n or_o jacobite_n indian_n and_o in_o the_o greek_a among_o the_o melchites_n and_o georgian_n the_o vulgar_a to_o all_o these_o being_n arabic_a or_o to_o some_o more_o easterly_a the_o persian_a tongue_n and_o in_o the_o ancient_a and_o pure_a greek_a still_o among_o the_o grecian_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o latin_a among_o the_o latin_n where_o those_o who_o speak_v the_o vulgar_a greek_a do_v understand_v little_a of_o it_o see_v brerewood_n inquiry_n p._n 9_o 12._o 61._o 192._o 196._o only_a in_o the_o east_n the_o armenian_n in_o the_o north_n the_o moscovite_n and_o some_o other_o sclavonian_n in_o the_o south_n the_o abyssine_n people_n most_o ignorant_a of_o the_o learned_a language_n have_v it_o in_o their_o vulgar_a and_o in_o this_o have_v only_o what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n maintain_v lawful_a and_o easy_o indulge_v to_o several_a nation_n of_o its_o communion_n as_o it_o do_v long_o ago_o to_o the_o sclavonian_n by_o pope_n john_n 8._o and_o now_o of_o late_a to_o the_o chineses_n by_o pope_n paul_n 5._o at_o the_o request_n of_o the_o jesuit_n 15._o their_o priest_n be_v marry_v and_o though_o they_o permit_v they_o not_o to_o marry_v a_o second_o wife_n without_o special_a dispensation_n yet_o if_o any_o do_v they_o do_v not_o void_a nor_o dissolve_v the_o marriage_n to_o this_o see_v what_o be_v say_v before_o §_o 164._o with_o they_o man_n marry_v may_v receive_v order_n after_o order_n receive_v none_o may_v marry_v 16._o they_o make_v no_o image_n of_o god_n nor_o any_o among_o the_o latin_n with_o the_o same_o intention_n as_o other_o image_n viz._n thereby_o to_o resemble_v the_o figure_n or_o nature_n of_o god_n such_o a_o image_n verum_fw-la idolum_fw-la constitueret_fw-la say_v bellarmine_n 8._o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr imag._n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o only_o this_o be_v by_o many_o hold_v lawful_a a_o holy_a history_n in_o a_o table_n and_o that_o to_o represent_v to_o some_o man_n eye_n what_o have_v be_v see_v by_o other_o man_n as_o the_o sit_v of_o the_o ancient_a of_o day_n in_o daniel_n c._n 7._o or_o the_o descent_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o mat._n c._n 3._o that_o be_v not_o to_o show_v what_o these_o person_n be_v but_o how_o they_o have_v appear_v where_o be_v no_o danger_n of_o mistake_n by_o it_o what_o they_o be_v as_o also_o incorporeal_a angel_n be_v innocent_o represent_v wing_a boy_n 17._o they_o have_v no_o massy_a image_n but_o picture_n only_o but_o they_o give_v the_o same_o relative_a veneration_n to_o sacred_a picture_n which_o protestant_n omit_v to_o mention_v as_o the_o latin_n to_o their_o image_n though_o some_o latin_n also_o do_v forbear_v the_o use_n of_o emboss_a image_n 18._o they_o think_v that_o properly_z god_n only_o be_v to_o be_v invocate_v and_o howsoever_o they_o have_v a_o kind_n of_o invocation_n of_o saint_n yet_o they_o think_v that_o god_n
grecian_a opinion_n be_v since_o but_o what_o they_o be_v when_o first_o the_o reformation_n be_v make_v now_o jeremias_n his_o declaration_n be_v not_o long_o after_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o cyril_n above_o 50._o year_n after_o his_o 2_o concern_v the_o newness_n of_o cyril_n opinion_n the_o word_n of_o knowles_n ibid._n be_v considerable_a who_o there_o say_v that_o he_o be_v a_o reverend_a and_o learned_a man_n and_o that_o he_o desire_v to_o reform_v many_o error_n and_o to_o enlighten_v much_o of_o the_o blindness_n of_o his_o church_n so_o that_o it_o seem_v he_o be_v a_o reformer_n in_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o these_o other_o be_v in_o the_o western_a which_o also_o appear_v from_o the_o complaint_n and_o persecution_n against_o he_o more_o than_o against_o his_o predecessor_n by_o the_o agent_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n upon_o this_o pretence_n knowles_n ibid._n and_o he_o be_v say_v 528._o say_v spondan_n a._n d._n 1638._o franc._n à_fw-fr s._n clarâ_fw-la system_fw-la fidei_fw-la p._n 528._o at_o last_o for_o certain_a crime_n object_v to_o he_o and_o among_o other_o charge_v with_o innovation_n in_o religion_n by_o the_o greek_n to_o have_v be_v imprison_v and_o short_o after_o execute_v and_o another_o cyril_n ab_fw-la iberia_n former_o reject_v to_o have_v be_v repossess_v of_o his_o chair_n but_o 3_o how_o contrary_a soever_o cyril_n opinion_n be_v to_o those_o of_o jeremias_n yet_o the_o same_o testimony_n abovenamed_a 162._o abovenamed_a §._o 158._o n_o 2._o 165_o 162._o that_o show_v jeremias_n to_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n show_v cyril_n whoever_o have_v new_o reform_v he_o not_o to_o be_v so_o but_o 4_o indeed_o his_o declaration_n though_o it_o seem_v purposely_o mould_v according_a to_o the_o calvinist_n expression_n be_v very_o short_a and_o spare_v general_a and_o unclear_a extend_v to_o few_o point_n and_o wave_v the_o rest_n and_o forbear_v there_o to_o mention_v any_o one_o point_n save_o that_o of_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a gho_n it_o wherein_o the_o greek_n differ_v from_o the_o reform_v as_o sure_o in_o some_o they_o do_v and_o again_o those_o point_n therein_o in_o which_o cyril_n seem_v more_o clear_o to_o contradict_v both_o jeremias_n and_o the_o roman_a tenant_n namely_o the_o deny_v of_o purgatory_n and_o of_o transubstantiation_n if_o therein_o he_o intend_v to_o deny_v all_o sort_n of_o purgatory_n though_o not_o by_o five_o and_o all_o transmutation_n of_o the_o element_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v unquestionable_o singular_a and_o not_o own_v by_o the_o greek_n as_o be_v show_v before_o and_o as_o be_v witness_v also_o by_o some_o reform_a etc._n reform_a §._o 167_o 169._o etc._n etc._n out_o of_o the_o common_a relation_n of_o the_o grecian_a opinion_n and_o practice_n 5_o if_o cyril_n or_o any_o other_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v entertain_v any_o reform_v and_o new_a opinion_n diverse_a from_o his_o predecessor_n whilst_o such_o a_o one_o be_v not_o follow_v in_o they_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n these_o be_v to_o be_v style_v not_o its_o doctrine_n but_o his_o own_o and_o it_o be_v not_o deny_v that_o patriarch_n as_o well_o as_o other_o may_v be_v heretical_a for_o in_o several_a age_n some_o have_v be_v so_o but_o 6_o if_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n shall_v also_o have_v concur_v with_o cyril_n in_o such_o innovation_n then_o will_v this_o only_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v true_a of_o the_o greek_a church_n as_o of_o the_o protestant_n that_o they_o also_o have_v reform_v from_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n 1._o from_o the_o former_a as_o well_o greek_a church_n as_o latin_a and_o so_o this_o fact_n of_o they_o will_v prove_v no_o just_a plea_n for_o the_o protestant_a practice_n if_o a_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n catholic_n b●_n schism_n but_o only_o the_o enlargement_n of_o the_o same_o guilt_n to_o another_o church_n the_o four_o discourse_n contain_v the_o socinian_o apology_n for_o the_o believe_a and_o teach_v his_o doctrine_n against_o former_a church-definition_n and_o present_a church-authority_n upon_o the_o protestant_n ground_n divide_v into_o five_o conference_n the_o i._o conference_n the_o socinian_n protestant-plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 2._o 1_o that_o he_o believe_v all_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n and_o therefore_o implicit_o believe_v those_o truth_n against_o which_o he_o err_v ib._n 2._o that_o also_o he_o use_v his_o best_a endeavour_n to_o find_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o that_o more_o be_v not_o require_v of_o he_o from_o god_n for_o his_o faith_n or_o salvation_n than_o do_v his_o best_a endeavour_n for_o attain_v it_o §_o 3._o 3._o that_o as_o for_o a_o explicit_a faith_n require_v of_o some_o point_n necessary_a he_o be_v sufficient_o assure_v that_o this_o point_n concern_v the_o son_n consubstantiality_n with_o the_o father_n as_o to_o the_o affirmative_a be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o protestant_n affirm_v all_o necessary_n to_o be_v clear_a in_o scripture_n even_o to_o the_o unlearned_a which_o this_o in_o the_o affirmative_a be_v not_o to_o he_o §_o 4._o 4._o that_o several_a express_v and_o plain_a scripture_n do_v persuade_v he_o that_o the_o negative_a if_o either_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o that_o from_o the_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n he_o have_v as_o much_o certainty_n in_o this_o point_n as_o protestant_n can_v have_v from_o they_o in_o some_o other_o hold_v against_o the_o common_a expression_n of_o the_o former_a time_n of_o the_o church_n §_o 6_o 8._o 5._o that_o for_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o scripture_n either_o he_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o a_o just_a industry_n use_v or_o else_o that_o protestant_n in_o assert_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v plain_a only_o to_o the_o industrious_a and_o then_o that_o none_o be_v certain_a when_o they_o have_v use_v a_o just_a industry_n thus_o must_v still_o remain_v also_o uncertain_a in_o their_o faith_n as_o not_o know_v whether_o some_o defect_n in_o this_o their_o industry_n cause_v they_o not_o to_o mistake_v the_o scripture_n 6._o last_o that_o none_o have_v use_v more_o diligence_n in_o the_o search_n of_o scripture_n than_o the_o socinian_o as_o appear_v by_o their_o writing_n addict_v themselves_o whole_o to_o this_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v any_o way_n by_o ass_v by_o any_o other_o humane_a either_o modern_a or_o ancient_a authority_n §_o 5._o digress_v where_o the_o protestant_n and_o socinian_n pretend_a certainty_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n apprehend_v by_o they_o and_o make_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n against_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o same_o scripture_n declare_v by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o church_n be_v examine_v §_o 9_o the_o ii_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o as_o this_o can_v just_o oblige_v §_o 13._o 1_o that_o a_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n such_o as_o the_o protestant_n require_v for_o the_o prove_v of_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v necessary_a can_v never_o be_v show_v concern_v this_o point_n of_o consubstantiality_n §_o 13._o and_o that_o the_o consent_n to_o such_o a_o doctrine_n of_o the_o major_a part_n be_v no_o argument_n sufficient_a since_o the_o protestant_n deny_v the_o like_a consent_n valid_a for_o several_a other_o point_n §_o 14._o 2._o that_o suppose_v a_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o all_o age_n in_o this_o point_n yet_o from_o hence_o a_o christian_n have_v no_o security_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n if_o this_o point_n whether_o way_n soever_o hold_v be_v a_o non-necessary_a for_o that_o in_o such_o it_o be_v say_v the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v §_o 15._o 3._o that_o this_o article_n be_v in_o the_o affirmative_a put_v in_o the_o creed_n prove_v it_o not_o as_o to_o the_o affirmative_a a_o necessary_a §_o 16._o 1_o because_o not_o original_o in_o the_o creed_n but_o add_v by_o a_o council_n to_o which_o creed_n if_o one_o council_n may_v add_v so_o may_v another_o of_o equal_a authority_n in_o any_o age_n and_o whatever_o restrain_v the_o make_v by_o a_o former_a council_n 2._o because_o several_a article_n of_o the_o late_a creed_n be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v but_o upon_o a_o previous_a conviction_n that_o they_o be_v divine_a revelation_n §_o 16._o 4._o last_o that_o though_o the_o whole_a church_n deliver_v for_o truth_n in_o any_o point_n the_o contrary_a to_o that_o he_o hold_v he_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o resign_v his_o judgement_n to_o she_o except_o conditional_o and_o
with_o this_o reservation_n unless_o on_o the_o other_o side_n there_o appear_v evidence_n to_o he_o in_o god_n word_n now_o of_o the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o point_n on_o his_o side_n that_o he_o have_v no_o doubt_n §_o 17._o the_o iii_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n the_o just_a condition_n thereof_o observe_v §_o 18._o that_o he_o conceive_v he_o owe_v no_o obedience_n to_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 1._o because_o this_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o have_v be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n with_o so_o much_o certainty_n as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o ground_n of_o his_o faith_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o many_o question_n mention_v by_o mr._n chilling-worth_n stillingfleet_n and_o other_o protestant_n wherein_o he_o must_v first_o be_v satisfy_v concern_v it_o which_o see_v disc_n 3._o §_o 86._o &c_n &c_n §_o 18._o 2._o because_o though_o it_o be_v a_o general_n council_n yet_o it_o may_v err_v even_o in_o necessary_n if_o it_o be_v not_o universal_o accept_v as_o he_o can_v show_v it_o be_v not_o 3._o that_o though_o yield_v to_o be_v general_o accept_v it_o may_v err_v still_o in_o non-necessaries_a and_o that_o protestant_n can_v prove_v this_o point_n to_o be_v otherwise_o 4._o that_o the_o leader_n of_o this_o council_n be_v plain_o a_o party_n contestingt_fw-fr his_o for_o many_o year_n before_o with_o the_o other_o side_n condemn_v and_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n 5._o all_o these_o exception_n cancel_v and_o obedience_n grant_v due_a to_o this_o council_n yet_o that_o so_o there_o be_v due_a to_o it_o not_o that_o of_o assent_n but_o only_o of_o silence_n §_o 19_o 6._o but_o yet_o not_o that_o of_o silence_n neither_o from_o he_o consider_v his_o present_a persuasion_n that_o indeed_o the_o affirmative_a in_o this_o point_n be_v a_o error_n manifest_a and_o intolerable_a concern_v which_o matter_n his_o party_n have_v long_o complain_v to_o their_o superior_n and_o produce_v sufficient_a evidence_n yet_o these_o have_v proceed_v to_o no_o redress_n of_o it_o §_o 20._o 7._o but_o yet_o that_o he_o will_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o a_o future_a council_n if_o it_o right_o consider_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o tenant_n decree_v that_o which_o be_v according_a to_o god_n word_n and_o he_o be_v convince_v thereof_o §_o 22._o the_o iv_o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n §_o 23._o that_o he_o can_v right_o according_a to_o protestant_a principle_n be_v accuse_v as_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n for_o several_a reason_n 1._o because_o protestant_n hold_v heresy_n to_o be_v a_o obstinate_a defence_n of_o some_o error_n against_o a_o fundamental_a he_o think_v from_o hence_o his_o tenant_n free_v from_o be_v a_o heresy_n as_o long_o as_o in_o silence_n he_o retain_v it_o unless_o he_o engage_v further_o to_o a_o public_a pertinacious_a maintain_v thereof_o §_o 23._o 2._o fundamental_o vary_v according_a to_o particular_a person_n and_o sufficient_a proposal_n none_o can_v conclude_v this_o point_n in_o the_o affirmative_a to_o be_v as_o to_o he_o a_o fundamental_a or_o of_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n 3._o that_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n declare_v some_o point_n heresy_n do_v not_o necessary_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v so_o because_o they_o may_v err_v in_o fundamental_o or_o at_o least_o in_o distinguish_v they_o from_o other_o point_n §_o 26._o 4._o that_o he_o can_v have_v no_o autocatacrisie_n or_o obstinacy_n in_o a_o dissent_v from_o their_o definition_n till_o he_o be_v either_o actual_o convince_v or_o at_o least_o have_v have_v a_o sufficient_a proposal_n either_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o such_o point_n define_v or_o that_o such_o council_n have_v authority_n to_o require_v submission_n of_o judgement_n and_o assent_v to_o their_o definition_n of_o which_o conviction_n or_o sufficient_a proposal_n that_o vary_v much_o according_a to_o the_o differ_a condition_n of_o several_a person_n as_o to_o himself_o none_o can_v judge_v save_o himself_o and_o consequent_o neither_o can_v they_o judge_v of_o his_o guilt_n of_o heresy_n ib._n the_o v._o conference_n his_o plea_n for_o his_o not_o be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n §_o 28._o 1._o that_o the_o socinian_n church_n have_v not_o forsake_v the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n or_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o it_o but_o only_o leave_v one_o part_n of_o it_o that_o be_v corrupt_v and_o reform_v another_o part_n i._n e._n themselves_z or_o that_o he_o and_o the_o socinian_n church_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n they_o have_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a because_o not_o from_o themselves_o §_o 28._o 2._o that_o their_o separation_n be_v for_o a_o error_n unjust_o impose_v upon_o they_o as_o a_o condition_n of_o communion_n the_o schism_n be_v not_o they_o who_o make_v the_o separation_n but_o they_o who_o cause_v it_o §_o 29._o beside_o that_o what_o ever_o the_o truth_n of_o thing_n be_v yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v require_v by_o any_o church_n to_o profess_v they_o believe_v what_o they_o do_v not_o their_o separation_n can_v be_v say_v causeless_a and_o so_o schism_n §_o 32._o 3._o that_o though_o he_o and_o his_o party_n have_v forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o other_o church_n yet_o not_o the_o internal_a in_o which_o they_o remain_v still_o unite_v to_o they_o both_o in_o that_o internal_a communion_n of_o charity_n in_o not_o condemn_v all_o other_o church_n as_o non-catholick_n and_o in_o that_o of_o faith_n in_o all_o essential_o and_o fundamental_o and_o in_o all_o such_o point_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n consist_v §_o 30._o 4._o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o consubstantiality_n for_o which_o they_o depart_v be_v deny_v by_o they_o to_o be_v any_o fundamental_a nor_o can_v the_o church_n from_o which_o they_o depart_v for_o it_o be_v a_o competent_a judge_n against_o they_o that_o it_o be_v so_o §_o 34._o 5._o that_o though_o they_o be_v separater_n from_o the_o roman_a yet_o not_o from_o the_o reform_a church_n which_o church_n leave_v man_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o their_o own_o judgement_n nor_o require_v any_o internal_a assent_n to_o their_o doctrine_n in_o which_o thing_n these_o blame_n the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n save_v only_o conditional_a if_o any_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o or_o not_o convince_v of_o the_o contrary_n §_o 35._o 6._o in_o fine_a that_o for_o enjoy_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o protestant_a communion_n he_o make_v as_o full_a a_o profession_n of_o conformity_n to_o her_o doctrine_n as_o mr._n chillingworth_n have_v do_v in_o several_a place_n of_o his_o book_n which_o yet_o be_v accept_v as_o sufficient_a 〈◊〉_d 41._o the_o four_o discourse_n conference_n i._n the_o socinian_n protestant_a plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n §_o 1_o that_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o the_o three_o former_a discourse_n concern_v the_o invalidity_n of_o the_o protestant_n guide_v for_o preserve_v the_o true_a faith_n and_o suppress_v heresy_n may_v be_v clearly_o see_v and_o more_o serious_o consider_v i_o have_v think_v fit_a in_o this_o for_o a_o example_n to_o show_v what_o apology_n a_o socinian_n upon_o the_o forementioned_a protestant-position_n may_v return_v for_o himself_o to_o a_o protestant_a endeavour_v to_o reduce_v he_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o use_v any_o of_o these_o five_o motive_n thereto_o the_o testimony_n 1._o of_o scripture_n 2._o of_o catholic_n church_n 3._o of_o her_o council_n 4._o the_o danger_n of_o heresy_n 5._o the_o danger_n of_o schism_n in_o which_o will_v not_o be_v think_v to_o go_v about_o to_o equal_v all_o other_o protestant-opinion_n to_o the_o malignity_n of_o the_o socinian_n error_n but_o only_o to_o show_v that_o several_a defence_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o former_a motive_n protestant_n use_v for_o retain_v they_o if_o these_o be_v think_v just_a and_o reasonable_a the_o socinian_o may_v use_v the_o same_o for_o much_o grosser_n tenant_n for_o suppose_v a_o protestant_n first_fw-mi concern_v the_o scripture_n question_v a_o socinian_n in_o this_o manner_n prot._n why_o do_v you_o to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o your_o soul_n and_o salvation_n not_o believe_v god_n the_o son_n to_o be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o substance_n with_o god_n the_o father_n it_o be_v so_o principal_a a_o article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n soc._n to_o give_v you_o a_o satisfactory_a account_n of_o this_o matter_n i_o do_v believe_v with_o other_o christian_n that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o with_o other_o protestant_n that_o they_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o
epiphan_n haer._n 69_o theodoret._n l._n 1._o c._n 5._o number_n on_o his_o side_n hilarius_n synodis_fw-la hilarius_n de_fw-fr synodis_fw-la relate_v no_o less_o than_o eighty_o bishop_n before_o that_o council_n to_o have_v disallow_v the_o reception_n of_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o in_o the_o council_n also_o seventeen_o some_o of_o note_n at_o first_o to_o have_v dissent_v from_o the_o rest_n §_o 14_o prot._n not_o yield_v what_o you_o say_v for_o truth_n but_o for_o the_o present_a suppose_v it_o yet_o the_o judgement_n of_o so_o small_a a_o party_n may_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v adhere_v to_o by_o you_o it_o be_v inconsiderable_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n declare_v against_o you_o soc._n if_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o much_o major_a part_n be_v to_o be_v take_v for_o the_o whole_a than_o the_o reform_v can_v maintain_v their_o dissent_n from_o the_o much_o more_o numerous_a body_n of_o christianity_n that_o oppose_v their_o opinion_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n and_o do_v still_o oppose_v they_o but_o not_o to_o stand_v upon_o this_o i_o will_v willing_o conform_v to_o the_o unanimous_a or_o most_o general_a judgement_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n if_o i_o be_v secure_a that_o she_o can_v not_o be_v mistake_v in_o it_o but_o 59_o but_o stillingf_n p._n 59_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v no_o infallible_a rule_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n in_o all_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n 133._o faith_n stillingf_n p._n 133._o nor_o may_v she_o usurp_v that_o royal_a prerogative_n of_o heaven_n in_o prescribe_v infallible_o in_o matter_n question_v prot._n you_o may_v be_v secure_a that_o she_o never_o err_v in_o any_o point_n necessary_a soc._n but_o you_o tell_v i_o that_o though_o she_o never_o err_v in_o necessary_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o she_o be_v a_o unerring_a guide_n or_o witness_v therein_o 15._o therein_o stillingf_n p._n 154_o 252._o chill_a p._n 150._o dr._n hammond_n defence_n of_o the_o l._n falkl._n p._n 23._o §._o 15._o or_o that_o she_o must_v uner_o declare_v what_o point_n be_v necessary_a and_o what_o not_o and_o i_o must_v first_o learn_v whether_o this_o point_n of_o consubstantiality_n be_v to_o be_v number_v among_o necessary_n before_o i_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n err_v not_o therein_o prot._n but_o 58._o but_o stillingf_n p_o 58._o it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a prescription_n against_o any_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o scripture_n that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n if_o it_o appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o such_o doctrine_n may_v well_o be_v judge_v destructive_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v so_o unanimous_o condemue_v by_o the_o church_n catholic_n soc._n why_o so_o prot._n ib._n prot._n stillingf_n ib._n because_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v hold_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o it_o be_v very_o be_v depend_v on_o its_o belief_n of_o necessary_n to_o salvation_n soc._n this_o last_o be_v most_o true_a but_o then_o if_o you_o mean_v to_o make_v your_o discourse_n cohere_v you_o must_v say_v it_o be_v a_o sufficient_a prescription_n etc._n etc._n if_o it_o appear_v contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n viz._n in_o a_o point_n necessary_a for_o the_o reason_n you_o give_v carry_v and_o secure_v you_o no_o further_o and_o then_o that_o which_o you_o say_v be_v no_o great_a matter_n for_o here_o we_o be_v still_o to_o seek_v whether_o the_o point_n we_o discourse_v of_o be_v in_o the_o affirmative_a such_o a_o necessary_a §_o 16_o prot._n but_o this_o be_v rank_v among_o those_o point_n which_o the_o church_n have_v put_v in_o her_o creed_n soc._n from_o the_o beginning_n this_o article_n be_v not_o in_o the_o creed_n and_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o all_o point_n necessary_a be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n yet_o all_o in_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o think_v point_v necessary_a 71._o necessary_a stillingf_n p._n 70._o 71._o necessary_a so_o as_o to_o be_v believe_v by_o any_o before_o a_o clear_a conviction_n of_o the_o divine_a revelation_n thereof_o which_o conviction_n i_o yet_o want_v §_o 17_o prot._n but_o yet_o though_o first_o the_o catholic_n church_n may_v err_v in_o non-necessaries_a and_o 2_o in_o what_o point_n be_v necessary_a what_o not_o her_o judgement_n be_v not_o infallible_a yet_o you_o have_v still_o great_a reason_n to_o submit_v your_o judgement_n to_o she_o because_o if_o it_o happen_v to_o be_v a_o point_n necessary_a she_o be_v from_o the_o divine_a promise_n infallible_a and_o unerring_a in_o it_o not_o so_o you_o and_o 2_o if_o not_o necessary_a and_o so_o both_o she_o and_o you_o therein_o liable_a to_o error_n yet_o you_o much_o the_o more_o and_o she_o also_o in_o these_o thing_n be_v appoint_v by_o god_n for_o your_o teacher_n and_o guide_n soc._n therefore_o i_o use_v the_o help_n and_o direction_n of_o my_o spiritual_a guide_n consider_v their_o reason_n do_v not_o rash_o depart_v from_o their_o judgement_n but_o yet_o 19_o yet_o dr._n ferne_n consideration_n p._n 19_o the_o due_a submission_n of_o my_o assent_n and_o belief_n to_o they_o be_v only_o to_o be_v conditional_a with_o reservation_n of_o evidence_n in_o god_n word_n for_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o dr._n ferne_n say_v i_o can_v submit_v to_o any_o company_n of_o man_n by_o resignation_n of_o my_o judgement_n and_o belief_n to_o receive_v for_o faith_n all_o that_o they_o shall_v define_v for_o such_o resignation_n stand_v exclude_v by_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o authority_n which_o be_v not_o infallible_a and_o by_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o matter_n faith_n of_o high_a concernment_n to_o our_o own_o soul_n and_o to_o be_v account_v for_o by_o ourselves_o who_o therefore_o stand_v bind_v to_o make_v present_a and_o diligent_a search_n for_o that_o evidence_n and_o demonstration_n from_o god_n word_n upon_o which_o we_o may_v final_o and_o secure_o stay_v our_o belief_n and_o 40._o and_o the_o case_n between_o the_o church_n p._n 40._o the_o church_n determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n say_v he_o ought_v to_o manifest_v it_o out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o we_o may_v expect_v such_o proof_n before_o we_o yield_v absolute_a assent_n of_o belief_n and_o so_o mr._n stillingfleet_n say_v 133._o say_v p._n 133._o all_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v leave_v to_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o pandect_n of_o the_o divine_a law_n because_o each_o member_n of_o this_o society_n be_v bind_v to_o take_v care_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n that_o tend_v thereto_o now_o i_o for_o my_o part_n see_v no_o solid_a ground_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n for_o consubstantiality_n but_o rather_o for_o the_o contrary_a which_o several_a of_o our_o writer_n have_v make_v appear_v to_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o unless_o the_o church_n be_v either_o infallible_a in_o all_o she_o determine_v or_o at_o least_o in_o distinguish_v those_o necessary_n wherein_o she_o can_v err_v from_o the_o rest_n it_o seem_v no_o way_n justifiable_a that_o she_o put_v this_o her_o definition_n into_o the_o creed_n she_o as_o i_o conceive_v thus_o require_v from_o all_o a_o absolute_a consent_n thereto_o and_o not_o only_o as_o some_o 70._o some_o still_o p._n 70._o will_v persuade_v i_o a_o conditional_a for_o some_o of_o they_o viz._n whenever_o i_o shall_v be_v clear_o convince_v that_o such_o point_n be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n conference_n iii_o 3._o or_o contrary_a to_o the_o definition_n of_o lawful_a general_n council_n the_o just_a condition_n thereof_o be_v observe_v §_o 18_o 3._o prot._n but_o do_v you_o not_o consider_v by_o what_o person_n this_o article_n be_v long_o ago_o insert_v into_o the_o creed_n namely_o by_o the_o first_o general_n and_o the_o most_o venerable_a assembly_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n that_o have_v be_v convene_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n celebrate_v under_o the_o first_o christian_a emperor_n by_o a_o perfect_a representative_a of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o by_o such_o person_n as_o come_v very_o much_o purify_v out_o of_o the_o newly-quenched_n fire_n of_o the_o great_a persecution_n that_o the_o church_n have_v suffer_v that_o under_o dioclesian_n will_v not_o you_o then_o at_o last_o submit_v your_o judgement_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o great_a and_o holy_a council_n one_o and_o the_o first_o of_o those_o four_o which_o s._n gregory_n say_v he_o receive_v with_o the_o same_o reverence_n as_o the_o four_o gospel_n soc._n no_o and_o for_o this_o i_o shall_v give_v you_o in_o brief_a many_o reason_n
that_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o nor_o in_o declare_v what_o be_v fundamental_a what_o be_v not_o fundamental_a and_o consequent_o to_o make_v any_o church_n a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_o will_v be_v to_o make_v it_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n which_o she_o propose_v and_o require_v to_o be_v believe_v i._n e._n that_o she_o may_v require_v our_o assent_n and_o belief_n of_o all_o thing_n by_o the_o device_n of_o her_o propose_v they_o as_o necessary_a §_o 9_o 6_o lie_n when_o the_o church-guide_n be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o necessary_n 6._o prop._n 6._o catholic_n contend_v that_o necessary_n *_o aught_o not_o to_o be_v take_v here_o in_o so_o strict_a a_o sense_n as_o to_o be_v restrain_v and_o limit_v only_o to_o those_o few_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v so_o indispensable_o require_v to_o be_v of_o all_o man_n explicit_o believe_v as_o that_o salvation_n be_v not_o possible_o consistible_a with_o the_o disbelief_n or_o ignorance_n of_o any_o of_o they_o which_o be_v think_v by_o the_o learned_a to_o be_v only_o some_o few_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n of_o which_o see_v dr._n potter_n §_o 7._o p._n 242._o etc._n etc._n but_o *_o aught_o to_o be_v understand_v in_o a_o sense_n more_o enlarge_v comprehend_v at_o least_o *_o all_o such_o point_n as_o be_v so_o requisite_a and_o beneficial_a to_o salvation_n as_o that_o there_o be_v some_o danger_n of_o a_o miscarriage_n therein_o either_o in_o respect_n of_o faith_n or_o manner_n either_o to_o particular_n or_o to_o the_o whole_a society_n either_o to_o all_o or_o at_o least_o to_o some_o person_n and_o condition_n of_o man_n by_o the_o ignorance_n or_o disbelief_n of_o they_o *_o all_o such_o point_n as_o corroborate_v fundamental_o by_o their_o near_a connexion_n to_o they_o or_o as_o serve_v to_o repel_v the_o malignant_a influence_n of_o some_o error_n that_o either_o direct_o or_o by_o some_o consequence_n at_o least_o undermine_v and_o corrupt_v or_o to_o use_v the_o archbishops_n word_n 5.6_o word_n §_o 35._o n_z 5.6_o grate_v upon_o or_o miss-expounds_a some_o fundamental_a either_o in_o the_o christian_a faith_n or_o manner_n §_o 10_o the_o reason_n 1_o because_o our_o saviour_n promise_a assistance_n of_o his_o church_n be_v not_o express_o limit_v to_o necessary_n in_o the_o first_o sense_n by_o any_o of_o those_o text_n that_o mention_v it_o nor_o can_v upon_o any_o account_n of_o the_o superfluousness_n or_o nonnecessity_n of_o such_o assistance_n be_v deny_v to_o the_o church_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o second_o wherever_o any_o error_n in_o such_o point_n though_o they_o be_v not_o principle_n or_o fundamental_o but_o deduction_n and_o superstruction_n appear_v to_o be_v gross_a dangerous_a damnable_a blasphemous_a idololatrical_a grate_v the_o foundation_n which_o sort_n of_o error_n protestant_n grant_v there_o may_v be_v in_o nonfundamentals_a and_o by_o they_o be_v such_o error_n charge_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n 119_o rome_n archbishop_n lawd_n §_o ●7_n n_z 5.6_o art_n of_o rel._n 31._o chill_a p._n 119_o but_o it_o seem_v unsuitable_a to_o our_o lord_n love_n and_o everlasting_a protection_n of_o his_o dear_a spouse_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v also_o incident_a to_o the_o church_n catholic_n or_o its_o supreme_a guide_n 2_o lie_n because_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o generally-allowed_n primitive_a council_n define_v and_o under_o anathema_n impose_v the_o belief_n of_o many_o several_a point_n of_o faith_n which_o fall_v not_o under_o the_o first_o notion_n of_o necessary_n do_v show_v that_o church-tradition_n have_v always_o understand_v christ_n promise_n make_v to_o the_o church_n as_o extend_v to_o necessary_n in_o the_o second_o acception_n neither_o will_n infallible_a assistance_n in_o necessary_n as_o they_o be_v take_v in_o the_o first_o sense_n extend_v to_o the_o church-definition_n make_v in_o the_o point_v deliver_v in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n which_o point_v yet_o the_o church_n have_v define_v as_o necessary_a and_o infallible_a again_o since_o it_o be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n that_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n 330._o 〈◊〉_d stillingf_n p._n 330._o accept_v by_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n diffusive_a may_v err_v in_o non-necessaries_a for_o so_o say_v they_o may_v the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n dissusive_a err_v 141._o err_v see_v archbishop_n lawd_n p_o 139_o 140_o 141._o if_o then_o the_o church-definition_n find_v in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n be_v also_o to_o be_v reckon_v such_o i._n e._n non-necessaries_a upon_o what_o account_n can_v protestant_n firm_o believe_v they_o for_o true_a except_o so_o many_o as_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v they_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n see_v they_o be_v deprive_v of_o any_o confidence_n of_o the_o church_n not_o err_v therein_o as_o be_v point_v reckon_v non-necessaries_a and_o the_o promise_v thus_o restrain_v to_o necessary_n of_o the_o first_o kind_n what_o a_o hurtful_a liberty_n be_v there_o leave_v to_o all_o sect_n to_o question_v the_o church_n infallibility_n in_o many_o principal_a article_n of_o her_o faith_n as_o for_o example_n to_o the_o socianians_n to_o question_v it_o in_o the_o point_n of_o consubstantiality_n under_o this_o pretence_n of_o the_o church_n possibility_n of_o err_v in_o non-necessaries_a 3_o lie_n because_o i_o see_v not_o how_o the_o title_n of_o holy_a continue_v for_o ever_o to_o the_o church-catholick_n by_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o lord_n can_v consist_v with_o all_o those_o error_n that_o yet_o do_v oppugn_v necessary_n only_o as_o take_v in_o the_o second_o not_z first_o notion_n call_v gross_a dangerous_a damnable_a blasphemous_a if_o as_o these_o be_v impute_v promise_n to_o the_o catholic_n if_o her_o doctrine_n and_o consequent_o practice_n be_v sometime_o damnable_a blasphemous_a etc._n etc._n how_o she_o always_o holy_a because_o by_o the_o same_o divine_a assistance_n the_o catholic_n church_n be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n never_o to_o fall_v into_o heresy_n which_o thing_n also_o infer_v a_o divine_a assistance_n thereof_o beyond_o necessary_n in_o the_o first_o notion_n unless_o they_o will_v affirm_v the_o contradictory_n of_o several_a of_o the_o church-definition_n that_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o athanasian_n creed_n or_o the_o first_o allow_v g._n council_n not_o to_o be_v heresy_n §_o 11_o 5_o lie_v because_o one_o reason_n which_o protestant_n give_v why_o our_o lord_n promise_v of_o these_o guide_n non-erring_a be_v to_o be_v restrain_v only_o to_o some_o and_o not_o enlarge_v to_o all_o truth_n be_v *_o because_o they_o be_v by_o and_o unnecessary_a truth_n to_o which_o her_o curiosity_n or_o weakness_n may_v carry_v she_o beyond_o her_o rule_n etc._n etc._n 141._o etc._n archbishop_n lawd_n p._n 141._o *_o because_o they_o be_v such_o point_n as_o may_v be_v various_o hold_v and_o dispute_v without_o hurt_n or_o prejudice_n to_o faith_n *_o because_o they_o be_v unprofitable_a curiosity_n and_o unnecessary_a subtlety_n for_o which_o the_o promise_n be_v not_o make_v *_o because_o deus_fw-la non_fw-la abund●t_fw-la in_o superfluis_fw-la &c_n superfluis_fw-la dr._n po●ter_v p._n 5._o p._n 150_o &c_n &c_n as_o natare_fw-la so_o god_n be_v not_o lavish_a in_o superfluity_n therefore_o what_o point_n though_o not_o necessary_n in_o the_o first_o kind_n yet_o be_v as_o far_o remove_v from_o superfluous_a or_o curiosity_n and_o be_v though_o not_o absolute_o yet_o very_a necessary_a still_o thus_o far_o in_o these_o we_o may_v suppose_v our_o lord_n assistance_n continue_v to_o his_o church_n and_o preserve_v she_o from_o fail_v in_o they_o ‖_o a_o second_o reason_n which_o protestant_n also_o give_v why_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o fundamental_o be_v the_o perspicuity_n of_o scripture_n in_o these_o point_n this_o power_n of_o not_o err_v say_v the_o archbishop_n 140._o archbishop_n p._n 140._o be_v in_o the_o church_n partly_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o this_o promise_n of_o christ_n and_o partly_o by_o the_o water_n which_o it_o teach_v which_o be_v the_o unerring_a word_n of_o god_n so_o plain_o and_o manifest_o deliver_v to_o she_o as_o that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a she_o shall_v universal_o fall_v from_o it_o or_o teach_v against_o it_o in_o thing_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n but_o doubtless_o many_o more_o point_n there_o be_v as_o plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n as_o those_o necessary_n of_o the_o first_o rank_n and_o therefore_o no_o reason_n to_o confine_v her_o un-erring_a verdict_n only_o to_o these_o and_o if_o more_o point_n than_o the_o primary_n fundamental_o be_v not_o clear_a in_o scripture_n how_o come_v protestant_n in_o several_a of_o they_o on_o this_o account_n of_o their_o clearness_n in_o scripture_n to_o oppose_v and_o contradict_v the_o supreme_a guide_n of_o the_o church_n 7_o concern_v the_o church-governor_n their_o exact_a distinguish_v of_o fundamental_o §_o 12_o or_o necessary_n from_o non-necessaries_a one_a there_o setm_v no_o
extare_fw-la unde_fw-la ea_fw-la quatenus_fw-la omnino_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la est_fw-la necessarium_fw-la cognosci_fw-la indubitatò_fw-la possit_fw-la at_o nihil_fw-la tale_n extare_fw-la praeter_fw-la sacras_fw-la literas_fw-la nam_fw-la si_fw-la dicas_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la esse_fw-la unde_fw-la ea_fw-la cognitio_fw-la semper_fw-la peti_fw-la possit_fw-la primum_fw-la statuendum_fw-la tibi_fw-la erit_fw-la deum_fw-la etiam_fw-la decrevisse_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la falsa_fw-la enim_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la rem_fw-la inepta_fw-la est_fw-la semper_fw-la usque_fw-la ad_fw-la mundi_fw-la finem_fw-la extet_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vera_fw-la extet_fw-la à_fw-la quâ_fw-la omnes_fw-la salutaris_fw-la u●rit●tis_fw-la notitiam_fw-la indubitatè_fw-la pevere_a queant_fw-la requiritur_fw-la ut_fw-la homines_fw-la complures_fw-la coetum_fw-la aliquem_fw-la qui_fw-la in_o omnium_fw-la ●oulos_fw-la incurrat_fw-la constituant_fw-la at_o non_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la quis_fw-la certam_fw-la aliquam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la hoc_fw-la privilegio_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la donatam_fw-la esse_fw-la contendat_fw-la ut_fw-la fide_fw-la excidere_fw-la nequeat_fw-la deinde_fw-la non_fw-la posse_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la veram_fw-la certo_fw-la cognosci_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la cognoscatur_fw-la quae_fw-la sit_fw-la salutaris_fw-la christi_fw-la doctrina_fw-la praeterea_fw-la indipsum_fw-la saltem_fw-la debuisse_fw-la alicubi_fw-la in_o sacris_fw-la literis_fw-la clarè_v ac_fw-la perspicuè_fw-fr scriptum_fw-la exta●e_fw-la debere_fw-la ab_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la peti_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la scitu_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessaria_fw-la &_o quaenam_fw-la ea_fw-la sit_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ac_fw-la unde_fw-la debeat_fw-la cognosci_fw-la clare_v describi_fw-la ne_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o câ_fw-la cognoscenda_fw-la facile_fw-la errare_fw-la posset_n nam_fw-la si_fw-la quippiam_fw-la scriptu_fw-la fuisset_fw-la necessarium_fw-la hoc_fw-la sane_fw-la fuisset_fw-la sine_fw-la quo_fw-la reliqua_fw-la omne_fw-la quae_fw-la cripta_fw-la sunt_fw-la nihil_fw-la aut_fw-la parum_fw-la admodum_fw-la prodessent_fw-la denique_fw-la eam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la quam_fw-la isti_fw-la pontificii_fw-la perpetuo_fw-la extitisse_fw-la volunt_fw-la constare_fw-la multis_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la atque_fw-la adeo_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quoqu●_n qu●_n ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la sunt_fw-la necessariae_fw-la gravissime_fw-la errare_fw-la thing_n usual_o plead_v by_o mr._n chillingw_o and_o his_o follower_n but_o whether_o borrow_a from_o these_o i_o can_v say_v nothing_o n._n nothing_o see_v below_o §_o 47._o n._n thus_o the_o socinian_o lie_v the_o platform_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o when_o the_o protestant_n for_o confute_v their_o error_n urge_v father_n and_o church-authority_n against_o they_o they_o reply_v that_o they_o have_v learn_v this_o from_o they_o to_o receive_v nothing_o beside_o scripture_n and_o to_o neglect_v the_o father_n prafat_n father_n see_v simlerus_n de_fw-fr filio_fw-la dei_fw-la &_o s._n spiritu_fw-la prafat_n meanwhile_o appeal_n of_o the_o father_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o acknowledge_v frequent_a and_o that_o also_o sometime_o wave_v church-authority_n 14._o church-authority_n see_v s._n austin_n contra_fw-la maximinum_n l._n 3._o c._n 14._o but_o never_o make_v in_o opposition_n to_o it_o former_a or_o present_a their_o great_a humility_n which_o also_o keep_v they_o orthodox_n hinder_v they_o from_o presume_v this_o and_o have_v any_o of_o they_o do_v it_o posterity_n will_v not_o have_v style_v he_o a_o father_n the_o second_o thing_n be_v 2._o §._o 40._o n._n 2._o that_o as_o to_o the_o sufficiency_n or_o entireness_n of_o the_o scripture_n 2_o 2_o for_o the_o contain_v all_o those_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v simple_o necessary_a of_o all_o person_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o attain_v salvation_n roman_a catholic_n deny_v it_o not_o but_o only_o deny_v such_o a_o clearness_n of_o scripture_n in_o some_o of_o those_o as_o christian_n can_v mistake_v or_o pervert_v catholic_n contend_v indeed_o that_o there_o be_v several_a thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o christian_n according_a as_o the_o church_n out_o of_o apostolical_a tradition_n have_v or_o shall_v declare_v and_o propose_v they_o as_o touch_v the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n several_a function_n of_o the_o clergy_n administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o some_o other_o sacred_a ceremony_n and_o particular_o concern_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n at_o least_o as_o to_o the_o clear_a mention_n therein_o of_o all_o those_o appertinent_o which_o yet_o have_v be_v ever_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n and_o touch_v the_o obligation_n of_o believe_v and_o due_a observe_v of_o several_a of_o these_o tradition_n as_o descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n learned_a protestant_n also_o agree_v with_o they_o 9_o they_o see_v dr._n field_n of_o the_o church_n l._n 4._o c._n 20._o dr._n tailor_n episcopacy_n assert_v §_o 19_o reason_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n against_o the_o covenant_n 1647._o p._n 9_o and_o in_o particular_a concern_v the_o believe_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n though_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o contain_v in_o scripture_n see_v mr._n chillingworths_n concession_n p._n 55._o 114_o 55._o see_v also_o p._n 114_o where_o he_o say_v that_o when_o protestant_n affirm_v against_o papist_n that_o scripture_n be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n of_o faith_n their_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o by_o scripture_n all_o thing_n absolute_o may_v be_v prove_v which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n to_o a_o gain-say_a that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o that_o the_o book_n call_v scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o he_o that_o will_v deny_v these_o assertion_n when_o they_o be_v speak_v will_v believe_v they_o never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o because_o you_o can_v show_v they_o write_v but_o their_o meaning_n be_v that_o the_o scripture_n to_o they_o that_o presuppose_v it_o divine_a and_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n as_o papist_n and_o protestant_n do_v contain_v all_o the_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o complete_a and_o total_a and_o not_o only_o a_o imperfect_a and_o a_o partial_a rule_n where_o in_o say_v all_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n he_o mean_v only_o all_o other_o after_o these_o he_o name_v presuppose_v and_o pre-believed_n but_o though_o i_o say_v catholic_n maintain_v several_a credend_n that_o be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o observe_v by_o christian_n after_o the_o church_n proposal_n of_o they_o as_o tradition_n apostolical_a among_o which_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n yet_o they_o willing_o concede_fw-la that_o all_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o be_v simple_o necessary_a for_o attain_v salvation_n and_o as_o ought_v explicit_o by_o all_o man_n to_o be_v know_v in_o order_n thereto_o either_o ra●ione_fw-la medii_fw-la or_o pracepti_fw-la as_o the_o doctrine_n collect_v in_o the_o three_o creed_n the_o common_a precept_n of_o manner_n and_o of_o the_o more_o necessary_a sacrament_n etc._n etc._n be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n contain_v therein_o either_o in_o the_o conclusion_n itself_o or_o in_o the_o principle_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v necessary_o deduce_v errores_fw-la deduce_v bellarmin_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la non_fw-la scripto_fw-la lib_n 4._o cap._n 11._o illa_fw-la omne_fw-la scippta_fw-la sunt_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnibus_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la necessaria_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la stapleton_n relect_a princip_n doctrinae_fw-la fidei_fw-la controver_n 5._o q._n 5._o art_n 1_o doctrinam_fw-la fidei_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o fingulis_fw-la explicitè_fw-fr credendam_fw-la omnem_fw-la aut_fw-la ferè_fw-la omnem_fw-la scripto_fw-la commendarunt_fw-la apostoli_fw-la the_o main_a and_o substantial_a point_n of_o our_o faith_n say_v f._n fisher_n in_o bishop_n white_a pag_n 12._o be_v believe_v to_o be_v apostolical_a because_o they_o be_v write_v in_o cripture_n s._n thom_n 22._o q._n 1._o art_n 9_o primus_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la primum_fw-la art_n 10._o ad_fw-la primum_fw-la in_o doctrina_fw-la christi_fw-la &_o apostolorum_fw-la he_o mean_v c●p●a_fw-la weritas_fw-la fidei_fw-la est_fw-la sufficienter_fw-la explicata_fw-la sed_fw-la quia_fw-la pervesi_fw-la homines_fw-la scripturas_fw-la pe●vertunt_fw-la ideo_fw-la necessaria_fw-la fuit_fw-la temporibus_fw-la proce●encibus_fw-la explicatio_fw-la fides_fw-la contra_fw-la insurgentes_fw-la errores_fw-la therefore_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n define_v any_o thing_n concern_v such_o point_n define_v it_o out_o of_o the_o revelation_n make_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o chief_a tradition_n the_o necessity_n and_o benefit_n of_o which_o be_v pretend_v by_o the_o church_n be_v not_o the_o deliver_n of_o any_o additional_a doctrine_n descend_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n extra_fw-la scripturas_fw-la i._n e._n such_o as_o have_v not_o their_o foundation_n at_o least_o in_o scripture_n but_o be_v the_o preserve_n and_o deliver_v of_o the_o primitive_a sense_n and_o church-explication_n of_o that_o which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o scripture_n but_o many_o time_n not_o there_o write_v so_o clear_o which_o traditive_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n you_o may_v find_v make_v use_n of_o against_o arianism_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a 8._o nice_a see_v theod._n hist_o l._n 1_o c._n 8._o or_o
diverse_o fanci_v the_o true_a cause_n thereof_o then_o in_o all_o this_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o be_v say_v §_o 20_o 12._o 2_o again_o for_o schism_n catholic_n affirm_v that_o any_o particular_a person_n or_o church_n which_o for_o what_o cause_n soever_o and_o particular_o for_o this_o the_o church_n require_v his_o assent_n and_o conformity_n to_o the_o definition_n of_o such_o her_o council_n do_v actual_o relinquish_v and_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o present_a church-catholick_n be_v schismatical_a mean_v here_o *_o by_o catholic_n church_n the_o present_a true_a superior_a ecclesiastical_a guide_n and_o the_o christian_a congregation_n join_v with_o they_o in_o the_o sense_n explain_v before_o disc_n 2._o prop._n 12._o §_o 23._o and_o *_o by_o external_n communion_n the_o church_n public_a prayer_n and_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o the_o participation_n of_o her_o sacrament_n and_o *_o by_o actual_a relinquish_a and_o separate_v either_o 1_o the_o set_n up_o or_o join_v with_o a_o anti-communion_n or_o 2_o a_o voluntary_a absent_v once_o self_n from_o the_o church_n communion_n or_o at_o least_o 3_o the_o incur_v of_o a_o excommunication_n or_o separation_n inflict_v by_o the_o church_n for_o a_o nonconformity_n to_o her_o decree_n of_o which_o see_v dr._n hammond_n concession_n below_o §_o 22._o n._n 2._o §_o 21_o the_o reason_n because_o 1_o all_o separation_n from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o this_o church_n that_o be_v make_v out_o of_o a_o nonconformity_n to_o any_o thing_n define_v by_o these_o superior_n be_v judge_v causeless_a upon_o the_o former_a account_n give_v §_o 6._o and_o §_o 14._o since_o they_o can_v require_v no_o unjust_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n as_o the_o assent_n or_o subscription_n to_o a_o error_n that_o any_o inferior_a can_v just_o judge_v or_o certain_o know_v to_o be_v so_o and_o this_o because_o in_o necessary_n these_o church-governor_n can_v misse-guide_a §_o 6_o 9_o and_o of_o what_o or_o how_o much_o be_v to_o be_v account_v necessary_a the_o judgement_n also_o belong_v to_o these_o guide_n not_o their_o subject_n see_v disc_n 2._o prop._n 6._o of_o who_o also_o divine_o assist_v it_o be_v rational_o presume_v that_o to_o thing_n judge_v no_o way_n necessary_a they_o will_v never_o enjoin_v assent_n upon_o the_o church_n censure_n but_o last_o suppose_v not_o grant_v that_o they_o shall_v err_v in_o some_o non-necessary_a to_o which_o notwithstanding_o they_o require_v assent_v yet_o can_v particular_a man_n have_v in_o such_o matter_n any_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o a_o infallible_a assurance_n of_o the_o contrary_a which_o the_o church_n can_v discover_v 42._o discover_v see_v disc_n 2._o §._o 15._o &_o 42._o and_o therefore_o can_v just_o on_o any_o such_o account_n withdraw_v their_o submission_n and_o for_o this_o reason_n also_o these_o superior_n in_o whatever_o decree_n they_o make_v or_o impose_v do_v never_o fall_v actual_o or_o causal_o into_o heresy_n or_o schism_n as_o who_o be_v not_o from_o other_o but_o all_o other_o from_o they_o direct_v to_o learn_v in_o spiritual_a matter_n what_o be_v true_a and_o lawful_a and_o to_o what_o they_o be_v or_o be_v not_o to_o conform_v but_o 2_o next_o if_o any_o separation_n from_o this_o church_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o any_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n in_o it_o to_o which_o a_o assent_n or_o a_o conformity_n be_v no_o way_n require_v by_o it_o this_o will_v still_o be_v a_o high_a schism_n because_o more_o void_a of_o any_o just_a pretence_n of_o this_o matter_n thus_o s._n austin_n 48._o austin_n epist_n 48._o speak_v not_o of_o the_o internal_a but_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o define_v against_o rebaptisation_n be_v upon_o this_o forsake_v by_o the_o donatist_n fieri_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la ut_fw-la aliquis_fw-la habeat_fw-la justam_fw-la causam_fw-la quâ_fw-la communionem_fw-la svam_fw-la separaret_fw-la à_fw-la communione_fw-la orbis_fw-la terrarum_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o de_fw-la unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la c._n 3._o quicunque_fw-la à_fw-la chri●ti_fw-la corpore_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ita_fw-la dissentiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la eorum_fw-la communio_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la cum_fw-la toto_fw-la quacunque_fw-la diffunditur_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o aliquâ_fw-la parte_fw-la separatâ_fw-la in●eniatur_fw-la manifestum_fw-la est_fw-la choose_fw-la non_fw-la esse_fw-la in_o catholicâ_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la cum_fw-la toto_fw-la i._n e._n *_o with_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o body_n which_o be_v totum_fw-la integrum_fw-la before_o some_o separate_v from_o it_o or_o after_o the_o separation_n when_o now_o the_o former_a totum_fw-la be_v divide_v *_o with_o that_o part_n of_o the_o totum_fw-la from_o which_o the_o other_o part_n separate_v which_o body_n that_o be_v part_v from_o be_v still_o the_o total_a catholic_n church_n of_o which_o total_a only_o s._n austin_n speak_v though_o the_o divide_a part_n or_o part_n for_o the_o amplitude_n of_o this_o totum_fw-la be_v a_o casual_a thing_n nor_o always_o the_o same_o shall_v in_o time_n swell_v to_o a_o great_a magnitude_n than_o it_o concern_v this_o matter_n also_o thus_o dr._n hammond_n 10._o hammond_n of_o schism_n p._n 10._o in_o his_o book_n of_o schism_n c._n 1._o for_o the_o universal_a or_o true_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v not_o in_o st._n augustine_n opinion_n possible_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o just_a cause_n for_o any_o to_o separate_v from_o it_o nor_o consequent_o apology_n to_o be_v make_v for_o those_o that_o on_o any_o whether_o true_a or_o pretend_a cause_n whatsoever_o have_v real_o incur_v this_o guilt_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o occasion_n or_o cause_n or_o motive_n of_o any_o man_n schism_n that_o be_v worth_a the_o produce_v or_o hee_v in_o this_o matter_n the_o one_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o force_n and_o moment_n and_o by_o consequence_n pertinent_a to_o be_v inquire_v into_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n whether_o this_o charge_n be_v sufficient_o prove_v or_o confess_v i._n e._n whether_o he_o that_o be_v thus_o accuse_v stand_v real_o guilty_a of_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n thus_o dr._n hammond_n where_o it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a for_o any_o to_o say_v that_o by_o separation_n from_o the_o church-catholick_n he_o mean_v voluntary_a separation_n and_o then_o that_o by_o voluntary_a separation_n he_o mean_v a_o separation_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n move_v he_o to_o it_o for_o this_o be_v only_a say_n there_o can_v never_o be_v just_a cause_n of_o a_o voluntary_a separation_n from_o the_o church-catholick_n without_o any_o just_a cause_n neither_o can_v the_o doctor_n be_v mean_v here_o be_v that_o one_o indeed_o may_v not_o separate_v but_o yet_o may_v by_o excommunication_n be_v separate_v for_o his_o nonconforming_a in_o something_o to_o the_o church-catholick_n without_o schism_n for_o elsewhere_o 9_o elsewhere_o answ_n to_o cath._n gentlm_n p_o 9_o he_o declare_v continuance_n in_o i_o add_v or_o incurrin_n excommunication_n to_o be_v actual_a schism_n suppose_v that_o if_o one_o will_v submit_v to_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a not_o that_o which_o he_o think_v lawful_a for_o he_o to_o submit_v to_o he_o may_v be_v absolve_v and_o free_v from_o it_o now_o the_o church-catholick_n he_o hold_v here_o can_v never_o require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o her_o communion_n because_o upon_o such_o term_n he_o allow_v a_o departure_n may_v be_v without_o schism_n here_o then_o take_v his_o word_n in_o their_o plain_a sense_n since_o the_o church-catholick_n can_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v such_o a_o church_n as_o give_v law_n and_o require_v certain_a condition_n of_o her_o external_a communion_n and_o since_o the_o doctor_n affirm_v 12._o affirm_v of_o schism_n c_o 2._o n._n 3.5_o 12._o that_o where_o a_o church_n require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o her_o communion_n one_o may_v depart_v from_o or_o continue_v out_o of_o it_z without_o schism_n it_o seem_v to_o follow_v that_o the_o doctor_n hold_v here_o that_o the_o church-catholick_n can_n never_o require_v such_o unjust_a condition_n which_o how_o it_o consist_v with_o what_o be_v quote_v out_o of_o he_o disc_n 1_o §_o 5._o i_o know_v not_o and_o hence_o that_o she_o do_v not_o require_v such_o at_o luther_n appearance_n yet_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o there_o be_v no_o church_n then_o extant_a one_o or_o more_o of_o which_o must_v be_v the_o catholic_n to_o the_o condition_n of_o who_o external_a communion_n protestant_n will_v submit_v and_o from_o who_o external_a communion_n they_o depart_v not_o see_v disc_n 1._o §_o 55._o n._n 4._o and_o then_o we_o see_v what_o follower_n upon_o these_o principle_n of_o dr._n hammond_n §_o 23_o mean_a while_n the_o catholic_n grant_v 1_o st_z that_o the_o several_a part_n of_o this_o body_n may_v without_o schism_n separate_a or_o differ_v from_o one_o another_o in_o any_o doctrine_n or_o practice_n wherein_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o
time_n and_o 3_o person_n yet_o 1_o do_v he_o so_o expound_v this_o universal_a testimony_n 2.8.10_o testimony_n see_v ib._n n._n 2.8.10_o as_o to_o signify_v only_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o most_o in_o most_o place_n in_o all_o or_o most_o time_n for_o else_o say_v he_o 2._o he_o §._o 5._o n._n 2._o there_o will_v be_v no_o heretic_n at_o any_o time_n in_o the_o world_n viz._n if_o those_o only_a shall_v be_v hold_v such_o necessary_a article_n of_o our_o say_v which_o all_o none_o except_v in_o all_o time_n do_v hold_v and_o again_o 2_o he_o make_v use_v of_o the_o church_n council_n for_o convince_a heresy_n against_o this_o faith_n viz._n of_o the_o four_o one_a general_a council_n say_v that_o all_o the_o part_n of_o this_o faith_n be_v complete_o comprehend_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o explain_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o three_o first_o age_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o ●our_n first_o council_n so_o that_o in_o sum_n he_o who_o embrace_v all_o the_o traditional_a doctrine_n propose_v by_o they_o embrace_v all_o the_o necessary_a faith_n thus_o universal_o deliver_v which_o can_v come_v to_o the_o five_o age_n etc._n etc._n but_o through_o the_o four_o and_o three_o and_o so_o can_v be_v no_o heretic_n see_v 7._o §_o 6_o 7_o 8._o n._n his_o word_n there_o n._n 7._o be_v of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o of_o those_o four_o council_n as_o the_o repository_n of_o all_o true_a apostolical_a tradition_n i_o suppose_v it_o very_o regular_a to_o affirm_v that_o the_o entire_a body_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v to_o be_v establish_v and_o all_o heresy_n convince_v or_o else_o that_o there_o be_v no_o just_a reason_n that_o any_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v condemn_v as_o such_o and_o see_v what_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o he_o concern_v these_o council_n before_o §_o 19_o and_o of_o heresy_n §_o 14._o n._n 10._o but_o here_o since_o he_o admit_v council_n for_o convince_a heresy_n why_o rest_v he_o in_o the_o four_o first_o and_o why_o admit_v he_o not_o all_o council_n in_o whatever_o age_n that_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n for_o the_o same_o discovery_n since_o many_o new_a error_n against_o tradicive_a faith_n may_v arise_v after_o the_o four_o first_o and_o the_o church_n late_a council_n according_o may_v testify_v and_o declare_v the_o same_o faith_n as_o occasion_n be_v administer_v against_o they_o if_o it_o be_v say_v that_o what_o be_v traditive_a in_o any_o latter_a age_n wherein_o some_o late_a council_n be_v hold_v be_v so_o in_o the_o three_o or_o four_o and_o so_o all_o heresy_n be_v sufficient_o convince_v by_o those_o age_n then_o so_o be_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o four_o first_o council_n traditive_a in_o the_o first_o second_o or_o three_o age_n and_o therefore_o what_o need_n have_v dr._n hammond_n to_o add_v for_o conviction_n of_o heresy_n these_o four_o first_o council_n which_o be_v hold_v after_o the_o three_o first_o century_n the_o sum_n be_v for_o convince_a heresy_n either_o the_o testification_n of_o all_o lawful_a general_n council_n be_v authentical_a or_o not_o that_o of_o the_o four_o first_o but_o if_o the_o doctor_n allow_v all_o lawful_a general_n council_n to_o be_v so_o as_o something_o seem_v say_v by_o he_o to_o this_o purpose_n here_o be_v §_o 14._o n._n 1.2_o catholic_n be_v at_o accord_n with_o he_o herein_o concern_v the_o nature_n and_o trial_n of_o heresy_n and_o the_o dispute_n only_o remain_v whether_o any_o of_o those_o council_n that_o have_v heretofore_o define_v or_o testify_v any_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n traditive_a which_o be_v oppose_v by_o protestant_n be_v such_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n concern_v which_o see_v in_o 1_o disc_n §_o 36._o n._n 3._o etc._n etc._n §_o 50._o n._n 2._o §_o 57_o etc._n etc._n thus_o dr._n hammond_n restrain_v conviction_n of_o all_o heresy_n within_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o council_n but_o bishop_n branhall_n 102._o branhall_n in_o reply_n to_o bp._n chalced._n c._n 2._o p._n 102._o seem_v to_o be_v yet_o more_o free_a i_o acknowledge_v say_v he_o that_o a_o general_n council_n may_v make_v that_o reveal_v truth_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o a_o christian_a as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o former_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v whensoever_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n produce_v by_o the_o council_n or_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n which_o be_v and_o always_o aught_o to_o be_v very_o great_a with_o all_o sober_a discreet_a christian_n do_v convince_v a_o man_n in_o his_o conscience_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o council_n definition_n and_o in_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n p._n 26._o when_o inferior_a question_n not_o fundamental_a be_v once_o define_v by_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n all_o christian_n though_o they_o can_v assent_v in_o their_o judgement_n be_v oblige_v to_o passive_a obedience_n to_o possess_v their_o soul_n in_o patience_n and_o they_o who_o shall_v oppose_v the_o authority_n and_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n here_o though_o the_o bishop_n make_v not_o the_o opposer_n of_o the_o council_n definition_n for_o the_o reason_n of_o oppose_v it_o heretic_n because_o he_o hold_v that_o no_o error_n but_o that_o which_o some_o way_n overthrow_v a_o fundamental_a truth_n can_v be_v heretical_a and_o though_o in_o his_o hold_n that_o council_n may_v not_o prescribe_v what_o thing_n be_v fundamental_a nor_o oblige_v any_o to_o assent_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o what_o they_o do_v define_v further_o than_o their_o reason_n convince_v they_o he_o as_o the_o rest_n leave_v heretic_n undiscoverable_a yet_o he_o grant_v that_o all_o be_v to_o submit_v for_o noncontradiction_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o l._n g._n council_n even_o in_o all_o inferior_a point_v not_o fundamental_a and_o that_o the_o opposer_n deserve_v to_o be_v punish_v as_o heretic_n which_o if_o observe_v by_o protestant_n will_v sufficient_o keep_v the_o church_n peace_n and_o then_o concern_v the_o past_a definition_n of_o such_o council_n see_v what_o be_v argue_v with_o he_o in_o 1_o disc_n §_o 36._o n._n 3._o etc._n etc._n this_o for_o heresy_n §_o 55_o 12ly_n for_o schism_n neither_o do_v they_o enlarge_v it_o so_o far_o as_o catholic_n that_o any_o separation_n upon_o what_o cause_n soever_o from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o all_o particular_a former_a church_n or_o of_o our_o lawful_a ecclesiastical_a superior_n or_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n be_v schism_n but_o restrain_v it_o to_o a_o separation_n culpable_a or_o causeless_a 271._o causeless_a chillingw_n p._n 271._o hold_v that_o some_o separation_n from_o they_o may_v not_o be_v so_o §_o 56_o but_o they_o leave_v we_o here_o again_o in_o uncertainty_n between_o these_o superior_n and_o inferior_n which_o of_o they_o shall_v judge_v when_o such_o separation_n be_v causeless_a when_o otherwise_o and_o so_o uncertain_a of_o schism_n or_o also_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o inferior_n be_v to_o judge_v when_o their_o superior_n require_v unjust_a thing_n as_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o so_o when_o a_o separation_n from_o they_o be_v lawful_a or_o culpable_a of_o which_o thus_o mr._n stillingfleet_n 292._o stillingfleet_n p._n 292._o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a than_o that_o the_o society_n impose_v certain_a condition_n of_o communion_n shall_v be_v judge_n whether_o those_o condition_n be_v just_a and_o equitable_a or_o no_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n may_v thus_o be_v produce_v from_o other_o protestant-tenent_n for_o they_o hold_v that_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v infallible_a only_o in_o absolute_a necessary_n or_o fundamental_o errable_a in_o other_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o its_o governor_n collect_v in_o their_o supreme_a council_n may_v also_o enjoin_v such_o error_n as_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n that_o these_o error_n at_o least_o some_o of_o they_o may_v be_v certain_o and_o demonstrative_o discernible_a by_o inferior_n and_o these_o complain_v of_o and_o not_o amend_v by_o superior_n that_o they_o may_v lawful_o separate_v in_o the_o sense_n explain_v before_o §_o 20._o from_o such_o communion_n wherein_o these_o be_v impose_v here_o therefore_o inferior_n judge_v when_o the_o separation_n be_v just_a when_o causeless_a and_o upon_o this_o account_n sure_o no_o separation_n will_v ever_o be_v i_o do_v not_o say_v schism_n but_o discover_v to_o be_v schism_n if_o the_o separatist_n be_v to_o judge_n when_o it_o be_v so_o but_o if_o the_o superior_n be_v to_o judge_n when_o a_o separation_n from_o they_o and_o from_o their_o definition_n impose_v be_v culpable_a or_o causeless_a it_o will_v either_o be_v always_o judge_v such_o which_o be_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n or_o such_o a_o granted-just_a cause_n will_v be_v remove_v by_o these_o superior_n and_o so_o there_o will_v be_v no_o
not_o neglect_v some_o mean_n which_o he_o know_v will_v certain_o keep_v he_o from_o error_n §_o 11_o 2._o but_o notwithstanding_o these_o this_o seem_v also_o necessary_a to_o be_v grant_v on_o the_o other_o side_n and_o be_v so_o by_o learned_a protestant_n that_o in_o what_o kind_n of_o knowledge_n soever_o it_o be_v whether_o of_o our_o sense_n or_o reason_n in_o whatever_o art_n or_o science_n one_o can_v never_o right_o assure_v himself_o concern_v his_o own_o knowledge_n that_o he_o be_v certain_a of_o any_o thing_n for_o a_o truth_n which_o all_o or_o most_o other_o of_o the_o same_o or_o better_a ability_n for_o their_o cognoscitive_a faculty_n in_o all_o the_o same_o external_a mean_n or_o ground_n of_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o do_v pronounce_v a_o error_n not_o as_o if_o truth_n be_v not_o so_o though_o all_o the_o world_n oppose_v it_o nor_o have_v certain_a ground_n to_o be_v prove_v so_o though_o all_o the_o world_n shall_v deny_v they_o but_o because_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o it_o and_o they_o can_v possible_o appear_v to_o one_o man_n intellect_n and_o omnibus_fw-la paribus_fw-la not_o to_o other_o now_o for_o any_o disparity_n as_o to_o defect_n whether_o in_o the_o instrument_n or_o in_o the_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n there_o where_o all_o or_o most_o differ_v from_o i_o it_o seem_v a_o strange_a pride_n not_o to_o imagine_v this_o defect_n in_o myself_o rather_o than_o they_o especial_o *_o whenas_o all_o the_o ground_n of_o my_o science_n be_v communicate_v to_o they_o and_z *_o whenas_o for_o my_o own_o mistake_n i_o can_v know_v exact_o the_o extent_n of_o supernatural_a delusion_n i_o say_v be_v this_o in_o what_o knowledge_n we_o please_v in_o that_o of_o sense_n see_v hear_v number_v or_o in_o any_o of_o mr._n chillingworth_n former_a instance_n mention_v §_o 7._o so_o i_o can_v never_o rational_o assure_v myself_o of_o what_o i_o see_v when_o man_n as_o well_o or_o better_o sight_v and_o all_o external_a circumstance_n for_o any_o thing_n i_o know_v be_v the_o same_o see_v no_o such_o matter_n and_o this_o be_v the_o rule_n also_o propose_v by_o learned_a protestant_n to_o keep_v every_o fanatic_a from_o plead_v certainty_n in_o his_o own_o conceit_n see_v archbp_a lawd_n 〈◊〉_d 33._o consid_fw-la 5._o n._n 1._o and_o hooker_n preface_n §_o 6._o their_o define_n of_o a_o clear_a evidence_n or_o demonstrative_a argument_n viz._n such_o as_o propose_v to_o any_o man_n and_o understand_v the_o mind_n can_v choose_v but_o inward_o assent_v to_o it_o and_o therefore_o sure_o propose_v to_o many_o man_n the_o mind_n of_o the_o most_o can_v dissent_v from_o it_o §_o 12_o consequently_n in_o the_o scripture_n abstract_v from_o the_o inward_a operation_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o any_o external_a infallible_a guide_n which_o infallible_a guide_n scripture_n itself_o can_v be_v to_o two_o man_n differ_v in_o the_o sense_n thereof_o i_o see_v not_o from_o whence_o any_o certainty_n can_v arise_v to_o particular_a person_n for_o so_o many_o text_n or_o place_n thereof_o concern_v the_o sense_n of_o which_o the_o most_o or_o the_o most_o learned_a or_o their_o superior_n to_o who_o also_o all_o their_o motive_n or_o argument_n be_v represent_v do_v differ_v from_o they_o from_o the_o plainness_n of_o the_o expression_n or_o grammatical_a construction_n of_o the_o word_n such_o certainty_n can_v arise_v unless_o no_o term_n thereof_o can_v possible_o be_v distinguish_v or_o take_v in_o a_o diverse_a or_o unliteral_a sense_n but_o if_o it_o can_v be_v so_o take_v than_o all_o expositor_n must_v needs_o agree_v in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o sense_n for_o example_n for_o the_o literal_a and_o grammatical_a sense_n what_o text_n plain_a than_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la and_o yet_o protestant_n understand_v it_o otherwise_o very_o deficient_a therefore_o seem_v that_o answer_n of_o mr._n chillingwoith_n to_o fr._n knot_n 307_o knot_n chill_n p._n 307_o urge_v that_o the_o first_o reformer_n ought_v to_o have_v doubt_v whether_o their_o opinion_n be_v certain_a which_o be_v to_o say_v answer_v he_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v doubt_v of_o the_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n which_o in_o formal_a and_o express_v term_n contain_v many_o of_o their_o opinion_n whenas_o the_o great_a world_n of_o catholic_n see_v not_o such_o matter_n beside_o as_o these_o be_v no_o term_n almost_o in_o any_o sentence_n but_o that_o be_v capable_a of_o several_a acception_n so_o since_o no_o falsehood_n no_o discord_n be_v in_o the_o scripture_n there_o be_v no_o senrence_n in_o it_o however_o sound_v for_o the_o expression_n but_o must_v be_v reconcile_v in_o its_o sense_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n and_o for_o this_o a_o diligent_a compare_v of_o text_n be_v necessary_a to_o attain_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o many_o place_n that_o seem_v at_o the_o first_o sight_n most_o clear_a in_o what_o they_o say_v but_o that_o there_o be_v also_o other_o place_n as_o clear_v that_o seem_v to_o say_v the_o contrary_a and_o some_o such_o place_n it_o be_v and_o that_o in_o very_o necessary_a point_n too_o of_o which_o s._n peter_n say_v that_o some_o wrest_v they_o to_o their_o own_o damnation_n wrest_v they_o because_o they_o want_v not_o industry_n but_o learning_n which_o the_o unlearned_a say_v he_o wrist_n and_o indeed_o common_o the_o most_o ignorant_a have_v the_o strongliest-conceited_n certainty_n for_o what_o they_o apprehend_v or_o believe_v 3.16_o believe_v 2_o pet._n 3.16_o because_o they_o know_v few_o reason_n against_o it_o whilst_o by_o much_o study_n and_o compare_v several_a revelation_n one_o with_o another_o those_o come_v at_o last_o to_o doubt_v or_o deny_v that_o sense_n of_o some_o of_o they_o which_o at_o the_o first_o they_o take_v for_o most_o certain_o and_o evident_o true_a pardon_v this_o long_a parenthesis_n conference_n ii_o 2._o the_o socinian_o protestant-plea_n for_o his_o not_o hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o unanimous_a sense_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o as_o this_o can_v just_o oblige_v §_o 13_o now_o to_o resume_v the_o conference_n the_o protestant_n better_a think_v on_o it_o will_v not_o leave_v the_o socinian_n thus_o at_o rest_n in_o this_o plerophory_n of_o his_o own_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o thus_o proceed_v prot._n scripture_n indeed_o be_v not_o so_o clear_a and_o perspicuous_a to_o every_o one_o 59_o one_o stillingf_n p._n 58_o 59_o as_o that_o art_n and_o subtlety_n may_v not_o be_v use_v to_o pervert_v the_o catholic_n doctrine_n and_o to_o wrest_v the_o plain_a place_n of_o scripture_n which_o deliver_v it_o so_o far_o from_o their_o proper_a meaning_n that_o very_o few_o ordinary_a capacity_n may_v be_v able_a to_o clear_v themselves_o of_o such_o mist_n as_o be_v cast_v before_o their_o eye_n even_o in_o the_o great_a article_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n therefore_o why_o do_v not_o you_o submit_v your_o judgement_n and_o assent_n to_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o point_n unanimous_o deliver_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o also_o be_v believe_v always_o unerrable_a in_o any_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n as_o this_o be_v soc._n first_o if_o you_o can_v show_v i_o a_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n of_o all_o age_n in_o this_o point_n and_o that_o as_o hold_v necessary_a i_o will_v willing_o submit_v to_o it_o but_o this_o you_o can_v *_o never_o do_v according_a to_o such_o a_o proof_n thereof_o as_o be_v require_v viz_o 57_o viz_o stillingf_n p._n 57_o that_o all_o catholic_n writer_n agree_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o it_o and_o none_o of_o they_o oppose_v it_o and_o agree_v also_o in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o it_o to_o all_o christian_n *_o that_o no_o late_a writer_n and_o father_n in_o opposition_n of_o heretic_n or_o heat_n of_o contention_n judge_v then_o the_o article_n so_o eppose_v to_o be_v more_o necessary_a than_o it_o be_v judge_v before_o the_o contention_n *_o that_o all_o writer_n that_o give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o christian_n deliver_v it_o and_o deliver_v it_o not_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o such_o as_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o it_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n but_o with_o a_o necessiity_n of_o its_o be_v explicit_o believe_v by_o all_o see_v before_o disc_n 3._o §_o 52._o now_o no_o such_o unanimous_a consent_n can_v be_v pretend_v for_o consubstantiality_n for_o not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o time_n next_o follow_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a nor_o yet_o of_o several_a expression_n in_o the_o ancient_n justin_n martyr_n iraeneus_n tertullian_n clemens_n alexandrinus_n origen_n that_o seem_v to_o favour_v our_o opinion_n 69_o opinion_n see_v petavius_n in_o epiphan_n haer._n 69_o nor_o of_o those_o bastern_a bishop_n which_o arrius_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o eusebius_n nicome_v 5._o nicome_v apud_fw-la